107 15 13MB
English Pages [253]
GOD'S
LAWSsHEALING FOR
Spirit,Soul
A
profound and
but
plain and
Physical
Spiritual body,
Laws soul FAITH
practical treatise
Life
by and IN
of
"
spirit THE
all are
WORD
Oakland,
1899
disease"
GOD.
FMTH
California
Natural
through
healed OF
BY
PUBLISHED
the
of
manner
Spiritual,
the
on
Revealing
Man.
which
Body
and
tual Intellecand
of
:rl iL
*
iN
i.
A,'
i
'^
;-v n.
LIBRARY
PUBLIC
49900 AdTO",
LfcWOX
Entered
In
" "
t .
"
*
"
according
Office
the
"
of
"
the
"
"
AND
FOUNDATlCINft.
TtLD"N
to
Act
Librarian
of
of
Congress
Congress
in
at
the
year
1897, by
"Washington,
D,
C.
i OF
TABLE
CONTENTS I.
CHAPTER
"
INTRQDUeTORY. of Life
Word
of Men
Doctrines
"
A
Wonderful Is
laws
"
Is
healing.
op
Man's
Age Spirit?" What
Ignorance Soul?"
Himself
of
Is
What
CHAPTER
Body?
"
**Mental,
"
Heals.
"
CHAPTER
Disease"
IN
MAN.
Medicines
The
"
Spirit
Only
Acts
25 CHAPTER THE
Batteries
Human
"
Divers
light "
^^^
Death""
V.
DOCTRINE
OP
Secret
of All
Faiths
^'Doctrines
'^ K
HEALING.
Healings
The
"
Great
TRUTH
Flaming False
Sword"
Healer
"
Search*'Second
Tree
39
ERROR.
of
Life
Satan's
"
Slaves
Faiths
Christ's the
through Servant
"
VIL
methods
Atonement
Peter's
healing.
op
Wife's
"
The
Moth
Leper
"
on's Centuri49
or
(iii)
^
"
43
CHAPTER
Healing
Great
VL
AND
"
"
of Devils"
CHAPTER
'A
22
IV.
SPIRIT
Drug
.17 ...
love.
Mystery of Mysteries God Loves the Loveless Healing" Only God Magnetic and Divine
Healing
^What
"
III.
god's
THE
12
II.
CHAPTER god's
of God
Temple
"
CONTENTS.
IV
VIII.
CHAPTER TRIUNE
THE
Faith"
LAWS
OF
HEALING.
Hands"" On of "Laying Temple "'Anointing"" of God Wonderful netism, MagThought Spirit Battery Healers" Fearful Faith etc. Ignorance 58 of Healing Miracles Sunlight of the Soul "
"
"
**
"
"
"
"
CHAPTER
IX.
ADVERTISING
Word
The
of God
Unbelief,
"
etc.
The
Fallen
More
than
disease"
of
manner
"
herein
are
HEALINGS.
recorded
Plants
AND
Wine
Timothy's
"
Sin""
Hezekiah's
"
^Epaphroditus
"
laws
glory
"all
of
of
ing) heal-
God
of
75
ANSWERS.
Sins
Man's
"
the
of
cases
God's
by
to
Canker-worm
"
hundred
one
(healed
QUESTIONS Poisonous
Church
"
of Figs Lump "The able Unpardon-
HabitSalt Drug Scurvy "Soothing Syrup" Beer-poisoned Mother's Milk" ^The Grarfield Great etc. Cigarette Habit, DeviFs The 87 Physician" Miracles(?) Medication"
"
The
"
"
"
EPIGRAMMATICAL
STUDIES. LESSON
The
Law
of
Causation,
and
the
I. Cure
LESSON CharaMer
Tlie
Mind
of
of
of
Disease
IL
Nature Thought Spirit" Living Forces
God's
and
Destructive
"
LESSON THE
Trinity
of
God
Mind
Quickened "
Intellect
"
"
Physical
Power
Mind
of 97
LIFE.
of
Man
Sources
of
Phenomena
"
of
^Trinity
Knowledge
"
Mind
"
Sensation 103
TV. 1 06
Body LESSON
Will
The
Forces
OP
LESSON The
butes^ Attri-
IIL
TRINITY
Trinity
"
and
"
"
Self-assertion
90
V. 110
V
CONTENTS.
LESSON
VI. 113
Substance
LESSON The
and
Crucifixion
Vll. 115
Atonement
LECTURE The
Love
L 124
God.
of
.
II.
LECTURE The
Power
the
of
Living
136
Touch III
LECTURE The
Power
146
Thought
of
LECTURE The
of Fear
Bondage
Power
"
IV. of
Thought
(continv^.155
V.
LECTURE
164
Creation
VI.
LECTURE
The
Trinity
170
Life
of
VII.
LECTURE The
Trinity
179
of Substance
VIII.
LECTURE
188
Self-will IX.
LECTURE The
194
Will
Divine
X.
LECTURE
Healing
the
in
204
Atonement
LECTURE
XI.
The
Gift
of Faith
212
The
Life
of
Faith
223
THE
"Eternal
"Holy
Only
Torture""
CHURCH.
OF
Holy
Sanctification""
Spirit"" "Charily" Hath
CHRIST.
Immortality"
and
Ghost"
"Love""
and
"Christ 246
Reveals
3ody
the
s,
Oq;
'Q.
..o"WORSHIP
Qj
GOD"
"BELIEF" OBEDIENCE
,OVABLE
JL"
FEARLESS^
XHOPEFUL
^
FORBEARING^
nVILLING
_^^
^^ED"
I4OVB
FORG
^Charity
rAGREED
MERCIFUL^
TRUTH
Endurance
JOYFUL!
lowly!
Trust^
[patient
fKlNDNESS
(powerful
JSlNCERITY
MEEK1 THE
"Chastity
ORDERLY
PITIFULI
ranceX
Carefulness
/righteous
RESTFUL^
IVENESSX
Forbea
Willingness
/grateful
GRACEFUL^
Fearlessness
^HOPK
rpECIDED
THANKFUL^
Frbedom
Faith
rCHASTE
obedienti
cheerful!
HOLY
Idbcision
Istrong
GracbJ
Rig-hteousness^
Itemperate
PURITY
Lowliness Power
Gratitude
WISDOM
QNSUSPICIOUSi CONFIDENT ENDURINGX
FORWARD THE
i
STABLE V
"^^^pV
3y
X.":^
LIBERAL
NEW
HUMBLE
X
PRUDENT
^-"^HOLY *
ering-j
Self-Sacrificingj
believing
^
Snff
Long--
Honesty,
\c0urage0us
SUBMISSIVE/ FAR-SEEINGi
Holiness
Justice
VCOMPASSIONATE
,
Assurance
Courage
Vthoughtful
generous/
equitable/
Meekn
Patience/
iHONORABLE
Vsatisfied
diligent!
Mercy,
Compassion
^impartial
FULI
TRUTH
GHOST
IAgrbbment
Igracious
^
TRUSTFUL^
^_
SPIRIT
^SINCERE
^
PEACEFUL^
*^j. ^
^KIND
*c4
FORGIVING"
SOUL
XCHARITABLE
^CAREFUI"
.^
FREE^
HUMILITY
^FAITHFUL
^^'
BIRTH JUST
/
^
^""
HONEST
O
^""
PURE
"A
WISE
'^"
^^ife
Abutx^
More
iC
*^^" Shali,
The
above
Saints*
redeemed
soul ''all
M^^"
with
Looking-Glass, (Lovable,
men,''
of
their
Faithful, standing
its
etc.) before
attributes will
convince God.
of
the
^*.-%'. IDOLATRYUNBELIEF
o^
1.^
1^*
DISOBEDIENCE FEAR
^
S7X
'
ENV?
"avarice
lustt' SOUL ""ul
Bitterness yfBITTERNESS
^
/Carelessness 'Covetonsness
PRID^ pridex
^v^^"^
S
""Wir
"truth
'Distrust
fre^doA
_
/OBEDIENCE
fDisorder
U
FORBEARANCE
TEMPERANCE
jDiscord
/impartiality ^/willingness
JDonbt "Debate
[Enmity
SsIcarkfulnkss
[Hatred
2|SINCERITY ^Iagreement
[injustice
Vlndecision
^^
justice
Partialityi
XV
GRACE
Prejudice/ Suspicion/ Jealousy/
REST^
PURITY
WISDOM
l^
^c
Rudeness
Subtlety
Ye 49
Incontinence
Must
"^
Hatefulness
^
Ingratitude
Wantonness
Filthiness
Hypocrisy^
Born
5VMalice
^^^
Viciousnessr
Unkindness/
/o y^
CHARITY
XCoucupiscence Xintemperance
^
Haug-htiness/
chastity/v
XSecretiveness
^
Foolishness/
holiness/^ honesty/7
POWER
\Usri|kttMtMtt 5i" ^
Willfulness! Slothfulnessj Superstition/
lowliness/o
yVPATIENCE
sincerity
VlndiflEerencc
venessL
Hopelessness!
riWATTTTTnKJ gratitude
^Xendurance
org-i
humility
spirit
^Xthanksgiving
\lmpatience
f
Stubbornness!
meekness
^Xrighteousness
llsrnorance
n
Mercilessnessl
forgiveness
^Ifearlessness
llmpurity
^
U"^'"i"8rne88\ ^
?."-"^" COM'V\'k''s^?A
COURAGE
rDarkness
%
^"""-"""MmtMttX
mvX^
"faith
'Dishonor
^
^
QnarrelsomenessV
LOVE
^Dissimnlation
Vin
Cf
^
"*^0^ ^
nEeartlessness [eartlessness
"|"
REVENGEX
FALa;;".
..n^R,
AdttlteryJi^
AGAIN
Murder
V^-"?
Vanity FEAR
"""
W^^
'^^^;
,"e*^*'
FOR
The
above
Sinners'
(Anger,
lyOoking-Glass, Avarice, his
own
etc.
) will
condition
with convict before
its
any
God.
attributes
man
of of
Sin
"THE
SWORD
"For
OF
word
the
SPIRIT."
asunder
of
I
**
will
praise
thee;
made.
for
I
and
there
yet
'*
in
which
written,
was
The
soul
in
thy
continuance
of
none
were
my
when
fashioned,
were
them/*
members
all
book
Ps.
139
as
14-16. :
that
sinneth
it
shall
Ezek.
die."
18 :
shall
**Then
and
the
was;
Eccl.
be-
yet
.
unperfect;
ing
substance,
my
see
12-
wonderfully
and
did eyes
.
4:
"
fearfully
am
Thine .
Heb.
spirit, .
the
to
even
."
and
and
powerful,
piercing
sword,
soul
Epli.6:n.
and
quick,
is
two-edged
any
dividing
God
of
than
sharper
THE
the
dust
shall
spirit
[body]
return
to
return
unto
God
the
4.
it
earth as
who
it" gave
7.
12 :
**
For
the
body
without
the
spirit
is
dead."
James
2:
26.
THE
GOSPEL
The
Chart
Gospel
both
the
attributes
the
of
Between the
and
birthright Within
this
fallen the
spirit
man
inner
circle
are
before
inner
and
his
and
his
fallen
tion. condi-
the
placed
circle
avarice, and
second
shows
birthright
fall, love, faith, truth,
second
anger,
Glass
Looking
Sinuer^s
of the
man,
man,
between
CHARTS.
attributes
the
are
circle
of
while
etc;
arrogance,
outer
etc.
written
are
the
of the the sins fall; for "the body reveals the only remedy: soul," indigestion, pains, fevers, etc., with
results
"
Ye
the
of
be
raust
The
bom
Chart
Gospel
soul
redeemed
the
again"
Holy
Ghost*
passes
"from
Saint's
"the
receives
the
contains
birth," and
new
life."
unto
inner
circle
inner
reveals
Glass
Looking
The
man. man
death
of
attributes
of
by whom the
Between
and
second
and
circles
the
are
restored
original birthright, love, faith, hope,
man's
eta
the
Between
**born
of those between
and
results "
of
second
**the
"life
more
The
four
cardinal
of
vipers
and
placed ^the
are
strength, vitality,etc.
etc.
"this
body
of death" teach
and and
fall"
only
power is faith
which
free
Lord
Jesus
reverse
to
the
effects
of
"idolatry,
belief, un-
the
tale-bearing,
fallen
God" "worship through alone, humility;" by which, man us
all
sprang
falsehood, can
in the
"idolatry,
were
which
fear," from
soul, slander,
the
the
to
of "the
sins
And
came
health,
acter char-
faithful, hopeful, etc.; circles
fourth
the
is written
abundant."
disobedience other
and
birth:"
new
circles
:" loveable,
of God
third
the
third
and
from
man
Christ, Who dience "belief, obecome, over-
can
unbelief,
and
disobedience." As
restored
man
fell
through
through
obedience,
disobedience,
ho
can
(9)
only
be
CHAPTER
I,
INTRODUCTORY.
The
following
Spirit, Soul,
but
loving
their
seen,"
and
Life,"
concerning
soul,
the
while
And find
of
and
God
of and
prejudice of
"not
yet
dreamed
all
from
laws
which
find
that
Spirit
the
shall make
make
such
That
body, since of
we
"the
falling
"miracles
of of
knowledge nor
man,
of
of
the
man.
(10)
man,
and
in
are
lectual intel-
the
to
point
away
of
difference
relation
of
and
soul
the or
soul
spirit
truth
shall
soul truth
the
been
never
will
8:32,
and
church,"
between either
John
spirit
the
through
therefore
startling
has
of
"the
For
Son
the
the
man,
and
the
out
there
of
body pages,
the
from
ignorance
them.
for
the
concerning
indeed."
free
be
God"
of
freedom
and
if the
"And
freedom
"temple
from
inspired
healing," the
facts,
which
or
the
thought
is needed
only
truths,
conscious
following
the
shall
freedom
have
of
which
free, ye
you
with
many
sciences,
of
results
free."
you
and
will
accord
great
heart"
spirit, soul
in
truth
of
of
spirit,
intellectual a
concerning
the
freedom,
and
philosophy
their
"in
which
govern
Word
reader
perfect
m
find
their
intellect)
darkness
spiritual
the
for
physical
the
freedom
and
and
(will
book
will
thought
body)
(man's soul
desire of
errors
have
men."
of
who
of the
unprejudiced
physical
in
of"
"doctrines But
this
all
and
portray
"eyes
own
salvation
for
man.
ignorance
Scripture
both
of
Healing
who
handled,
truth-loving,
statement
every Word
the
body
the
and
of
those
their
have
healing
the
and
Laws
by
what
terms
**hands
own
"God's
is written
Body,"
and
fearless
in
entitled
wor^,
any and to
36.
and that
cessation definite
spirit the
of
body
FOR
Most
AND
SOUL
SPIRIT,
11
BODY.
their "doctrines'* to soul theologies confine and the "intellectual other body and Holy Spirit; while admit the healing of the spirit,soul and doctrines," which man's that body by the Holy Spirit, declare spirit is a belief or unbelief; that, "at changeable gift,depending on the old spirit [which God to each soul, conversion, gave of the
mother's
the
in
the
from
child
the
spiritsubstituted
old
to
in
which
babe,
the
to
ovum
from
and
and
womb,
from
age]
has
builded
the
body,
the
babe
the
child,
is taken
to
and
away
a
new
place." do the "Ye not knowing Scriptures." concerning err, either the spirit or soul or body. Word God's (Eccl. says Then 12:5-7), "Man goeth to his long home. its
^
.
.
shall the
the
dust
[body]
return
return
unto
spirit shall Man
no
is made
his
change
more
his
The
body. spirit and
soul
Holy Ghost spirit,which will
and old would but
it,"to
good
or
where
"heart
of
there
If
flesh," so in
"heart
long
the
as
soul
body,
same
the
a
was
and
beginning,
its
"received
convert
a
spirit every time he was verted, conback "the received spirit" and **falls from spirit grace," which
he
[at last]unto
God
which
man,
of the
who "returns
deeds
it?"
gave
done
God
to
the
in
There
is
who
body,
gave whether
evil."
is dead" the
would
that
man's
life of
the
old
new
time
spirit m give account
If the
and
lost "the
"return one
change
life received
lost the
spirit" every
can
ending.
and
he can body, and change his soul or
can
the
.
it was; as it."
gave
and
he
it; but
human
it to its
spirit,"and
new
a
in
remains
with
go
become
each
who
spirit than
Holy Ghost and body ; so
stone," it may
of
God
spirit,soul
of
up
earth
the
to
natural
"spirit in man,"
(James
2:26),
entire man
"changed body" to
Spirit of at
cease,
in
was
the
be
to
be substituted
Christ
once,
twinkling
from
taken
to
of
exist an
in
spiritual body. soul and spirit are fixed of God Word clearly shows
the from
eye"
body entirely,
the
^vbich
"without
him at
once,
body the
"
then
being
"natural
the
That
the
in man,
the
ing asunder
of soul
and
spirit" (1
and
separate entities,
(Heb. Thess,
4:12),"dividI 5:23): "and
god's
12
God
pray
laws
whole
your
blameless
of
soul
and
spirit the
unto
healing
and of
coming
body
be
served pre-
Lord
our
Jesus
Christ"
Many
other
intellect,
and
vanity
disease," and
with
and
corrected
this
in
to
in
God,
book
the
healing
of
Holy The
subject a
Ghost
book
flock
world,
ahnost
To
following
life
a
nd
^
world
deatli
exposed
are
by
the
health
disease.
and
which
to-day
of to
of
interested
deeply
is
in
the
Suppose
"
written
cure
would
eighteen
medical
were
and
cause
Job,
'
whole of
off
of
revealed
as
"
take
affliction
healing,"
of
heart,"
and
on
the
of
the
of
"put
"miracles
the
dogmas
"imaginations
with
in
Christ
and
errors
power
co-worker
a
as
the
of
deviFs
the
concerning
fatal
and
grave
How
disease.
Yet,
it.
such
a
the
medical has
Book
utterly
and
unopened,
infallible,
was
on
the
profession before
lain
misunderstood,
the for
hundred years.
point
and
out, work
on
the
prove God's
Laws
truths of
Healing
of
that is
Book, written.
the
CHAPTER
god's
2
laws
of
"Add
to
Peter
1:5.
We
your
out
beneath,
thfe
only
muscles, Of
its
but
appearance
laws
of in
force"
man
spirit by carried
which
is "is
created
the
body
number
bones,
of
nothing
as
"the
outward
the
inward
and
spiritual
man
has
"found
symbol
the
of
"knows
he
out" *
nothing"
action
of
tlie
'spirit tlie
of
body
the
is
God's
and
Son
Father,
Holy
likeness,"
and
image
Ghost; a
and
trinity
spirit,
of
laws of
of
peace
sanctify
spirit
and
the
unto
spirit, or
soul,
of
of
or
and our
of
or
of
body,
be
Lord
I
and
body
man
"And
body.
wholly,
you
soul
coming
soul,
of
or
pray
preserved
Jesus
Christ."
5:23.
lThe"s.
for
as
he
body.
whole
your
Holy
and
God
blameless,
As
in
the
very
God
God
yet
man's
"knows
physiological of
disease
obey
must
can
trinity
a
heal
To
the
knows
physical
to-day,
every
spirit, soul
of
of
ous curi-
on.
God man
the "
yet,
"
the he
while
And
electricity
Of
the
his
nothing
8:2.
only
he
of
or
in
or
escaped
"knows
physiology
nothing
disease.
of
Cor.
sought
earth,
has
structure;
pathology
"
causes
its
"has
himself,
to-day
1
physical Of
etc.
yet."
of
man
the
on
body.
knowledge."
Man
age.
man
and
virtue
to
above, Of
know."
to
and
Nothing heavens
soul
spirit,
wonderful
a
himself.
him,
ought
knows
virtue,
the
or
made
he
faith
in
except
eyes who
for
inventions."
many
sea
healing
living
are
II.
Ghost
only
only
can
we
as
we
have
comprehend
spirit
soul
or
id
the
comprehend
knowledge
man or
body,
and as
the we
Father, of
laws know
all of the
Son,
or
three; his law
so
or we
healing, of
his
god's
14
trinity
soul
spirit and
of
of
laws
and
"To
body,
And
life."
eternal
healing
know
know
God
and
God's
image from disease of spirit,soul, and is to be freed body man is in the in the to "walk light." 1 John light as He know But to attempt to teach 1:17. to think (?),and we either ourselves, concerning others, without knowledge the trinity of Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, or of spirit, is to fall under soul and the powers of body in man, His
is
Son
to
"
"
"
darkness
and he
anything,
the
a
light;"
What
Word
the
of
God
Jesus
shall
he
as
Laws
"walks
he
truth," he
Truth
in
them
17:17.
the Solid
shall
Healing"
in
walks
John "
to
is he."
so
said, "Sanctify
the of
ought
heart,
is truth."
be
knoweth
he
truth,"
"the
not
Word
Thy
"God's
which
"upon
"the
tliinks thinks
his
m
is truth?
truth;
thy
through
thinketh
man
if he
but
darkness.
And
a
think
man
nothing yet,
man
If
23:7.
Prov.
if any
knoweth
"As
know/'
"And
error.
Rock
be
claimed pro-
proved in this book of healing for the spirit, soul and body of man. ness consciousis spirit? Spirit is the life and then What which and conscience of man. Spirit is the power It the body. creates Spirit is the only force in the body. It expands and the breatlies for the contracts body. the blood; the lungs; circulates chest; expels the air from the beats food; and heart; digests the performs every and And this healthful function of brain body. spirit of God) filling the body results in the **living (or breath and
"
soul" dust
of
the
of
breath
of
spirit
For
man.
in
ground,
"the
according
to
became and
laws,
own
God
formed
breathed
and
life ; and man sustains man its
Lord
into
directs and
as
nostrils
his
living
a
both
of
man
soul."
soul
controlled
So
and
by the
the the
the
body, Spirit
Evil. ''For Good spirit of the serpent or and the there is a inspiration of the spirit in man, Job 32:8. It is understanding." Almiglity giveth them that all mental and this "spirit in man" bodily, through well place. Jesus felt that as spiritual,healing takes as of
God,
**virtue His
or
tlie
had
garment
gone "
"
out
of
Him"
^''knowing
in
when
Himself,"
the
woman
i. e., in
touched His
spirit
FOR
body
and Mark
AND
SOUL
SPIRIT,
virtue
(healing power) had
is the
soul?
that
15
BODY.
of Him.
out
gone
5:30.
And
what
intellect
and
The
soul
The
body.
result
sl
"
is the
which
"mind
or
the
the possesses that which seeks
and
is like
soul
is
spirit with
the
will"
and
rejects.
or
the
"world, the
won't"
It
is that
Christ
the
the
;
devil,"
devil."
The which
that
disbelieves;
or
"I
is like
flesh, and
flesh, and
believes
which
that
of the
man
Christ," and
of
"world,
the
"I
ego: the receives
which
is that
soul
will
of
union
the
of
is the
soul
The
"
forever in Christ, or dieqforever out of Christ The which is the **temple of the living body of man, God** or the temple of devils, as we ourselves "yield ourselves to obey," is of itself a mere machine, organized an wails of of joy or instrument of love hate ; of songs or of failure; of life or of triumph of death; a or sorrow; of of love of lust, of good servant servant, a or or mere of the devil ; a mere for the play machine evil, of God or soul of the the "spirit of (will and intellect) through lives
man."
And
be
the
sung; that hates
will
to
serve
the
never
us,
wiir
depend to obey,"
and
vice, God
and
spirit; the
the
forth
come
ourselves
"yield
of
that
tunes
soul, will
the
of
fruits
the
from
this
upon for
the
and
we
hate, virtue at
We
faint
never
whom
ready
ever
or
instrument
jplayer to love
loves
the
wonderful
both
devil, stand
weary,
played;
oe
will
that
songs
side
our
choose
for
ourselves. In
and
the
For
God
is
spirit and to
teacn
Holy Ghost, to
in
this
triune
love,
know
Law
Spirit,and
a
in
us.
of
truth") except taught us our "
In
without
the
Spirit
either
comprehend life phenomenal
keep
Trinity,
spirit
"
have
we
soul
and in
found
of mind
body, man.
("worship
God
except
it is
ever
Father,
it would
be
the
striv-
Son, and
impossible the two, while living If body. spirit, soul and other
of
as
in
ever
how,
know
of which
or
as
love
not we
soul
manifestations
soul, and
can
we
spirit,and
of
must
we
spirit and
between
Spirit itself has
ing
wonderful
great universal
and
in
relation
life in
in life, and distinction
the
mysterious
their
in
body
love
the
showing
16
god's
had
Christ you
Me
no
who
one
conceived
**I and
that
if Christ
And
the
Holy
no
or"
whether
the
Holy
soul
send
on
either who
witness
of
man
God
the
is the
Father
Ghost
want
or
to
has
Himself.
Truth,
Saint's cares
"
understand
and
everlasting attributes Looking Glass); while the for God nothing whatever
asks
Satan's
Patience,
the
fallen
its
destitute, in
only
of
attributes
best, what
is
condition,
of soul
flesh," whom
this
the
reason,
mystery
of
the
or
"
to
one," in
the
here soul
of power and to still
beginning define,
we
and
spirit.
Spirit God, Purity, Virtue, and Love and God (see "
the
"
intellect
and
will
or
His
attributes, being
of
all
true
conscience,
pride, vanity, appetite, lust, greed, and Looking Glass) what seems (see Sinner's
policy, etc.
listen
Son,
him
For
between definitely, the difference the things of Spirit, alone, comprehends of
the
spirit,spirit.
Ghost," except
"
Love,
have
in the
come
more
all
could
Son.
or
trinity through the Holy Ghost hearts**in the Holy Ghost, to unite human heal disease by "laying on of hands," as church. And of Christ's gospel and
Justice, Mercy,
and
is the
Christ
love; and
"Jesus
say be any Holy has revealed
God."
Father,
or
Father,
have
which
would
claimed, ex-
sole, only possible, representative
either
that
can
there
God's
to-day
not
was
the
pray
and
could
and
Comforter,
the
earth
soul
God,
will
only comprehends
understand
few
*'with
had
"
have
Omnipotent, no
as
"
eyes
could
if Christ
one,"
are
said, "I
shall
Ghost,
fact, love
Hence
not
in
and In
had
no
and
equal
was
your
Omniscient,
Him;
mortal
Nazareth,
of
P*
than
greater
with
Jesus
Father
He
He
My name Holy Ghost," truly believed in
or
in
My
is
flesh, and
upon
God
healing
Father
Almighty,
an
Omnipresent believed
the
in
looked of
of
said, "My
not
behold
laws
The
spirit seeks
wisdom
and
is
voice) wisdom. warning soul seeks knowledge for success, The only ; knowledge lectual Hence whether the brightest intelfor good or for evil. and including religious proseljrtes, men women, lectual of medicine, doctors doctors of law, and having all intelsoul and of the effects of vice, on body, knowledge ignorant, if helpless under temptation as tlie most areas
itself
(if we
to
its
III.
CHAPTER
god's
O
loves
love,
God's
of
Mystery
the
sianer
might
does,
has
not
its
mysterious,
itself
bloweth
it
goeth:
that
is
And and
the
sin,
or
every
God's
holy
the
as
spirit, and
soul
can
God
has
And
and
and
understanding."
and a
man:
Holy
salvation
body;
"lying
for
of
the (18)
the
alas!
spirit,"
from
of
who
day
there has the
or
shall
'^
of
as
the
beguiled
truth,'' is
a
givetli
Almighty"
healing of
from
Eve.
of
spirit,
spirit, a serpent man
of
understand
can
for
man
"there
Almighty
man
gether, to-
no
is
word for
of
the
Word
the
sanctification
serpent
But blended
Thy
the
shall
will
that
far
disease
of
and
so
either
blinded
"And
agrea
united
no
is another
whither
and
soul
inspiration
God,"
sound
Spirit"
understand;
whom
soul,
and
the
already.
without
Word
the
except
inspiration
wind
the
workmanship,"
"The
Ghost,
inspired
so
may
the
tliem
body,
either,
will"
"whosoeyer in
"the
of
bounds
spirit is the
"God's
"The
stronghold
heart
are
of
those
set
and
body
trinity
as
"God
spirit."
Satan's
temple,
that
hearest
of
that
heavenly
world."
it cometh,
is
we
experienced God,
of
thou
is born
that
sinners,
once
Word
the
Spirit
either
for
inexpressible,
whence
intellect
bounds
the
set
the
of
body
a
has
and
that
one
is
determine,
as
tell
not
is born
which
who
loved
so
listeth,
it
canst
so
love
the
doubt
"God
Son,
life."
this
soul
world" "
everlasting
no
the
only -begotten
believe
after
loved
so
overpowering, that
but
His
have
it; and
where
thereof,
"God
sent
can,
ever
and
is love,"
or
felt
can
presence,
He but
perish
soul
loveless.
Mysteries!
^**that
"
not
No
the
love.
the
the soul
spirit,
ning, beginAnd
as
FOR
Eve
SOUL
SPIRIT,
19
BODY.
AND
all sinners the soul, and "beguiled," through as have and seduced been to evil, by beguiled, deceived, soul it that is by appeals to the appeals to the soul, man and must sin, sickness through knowledge, from escape, v/as
death. For
the
soul
"the sin
is of
of
only way knowledge "Christ
from
through
is "eternal of
God's
then
life."
soul
can
the
is
works
of
and
His
And
when
a
laws,
for
will
and
say,
must
pay the
Hence
Satan
God
of
unchangeable
that
and
destroy
"knowledge
soul
through
the
God.
of
to
whether
disobedience.
or
sin
escape and wisdom
And
die."
will, every
or
ignorance
came
it shall
sinneth,
intellect
the
of its
penalty
the
that
soul
behind
thee
"Get
ledge know-
knowledge and body,
has
spirit,
devil,"
which
Son;" soul
say,
the
me,
behind
Satan;''get thee behind prejudice; get thee me, ignorance, anger, avarice, bitterness, covetousness, distrust,
doubt,
fear, hatred,
envy,
pride, partiality,stubbornness, Chart. See Sinner's righteousness. disease-producing vipers of the soul are intellect soul
and
and
heart,
body
permanent
no
of
man
ulation, dissim-
purity, injustice,imand
vanity
self-
until
these
driven
out
of the
of
spirit and
For
cure
the
by
effected
be
can
me,
means.
any
health to temporary body may be restored through ''layingon of hands," by ''anointing with oil, in the name of the Lord," by ''Mental Healing," "Magnetic Healing," The
etc ; but
healing (?) of
no
presence part pf the
every The
and In
their And he
voice ten
found
law
body
or
and
is
Ghost,
governs
of
filled
has
body. healing
man's
perfect,
wisdom
tion salva-
as
sanctification.
Luke
17:12-19,
voices
and
they saw
spirit,soul knowledge of the Holy
power "temple of God,"
unchangeable
same
the
and
the
God,
until
Divine,
permanent,
either
that
cleansed.
And
healed,
turned
was
glorified God. cleansed? that
that
read
ten
but returned
"And
where to
Jesus are
the
lepers
have
said, "Jesus, Master,
were
he
we
back,
and
with
There
give glory
to
God,
up us."
when
them,
said, Were nine?
on
mercy
of
one
lifted
a
loud
there
not
are
not
save
this
GOD^S
20
He
said
Were
the
stranger.'* And whole/'
thee
LAWS
HEALING
OF
him:
unto
faith
"Thy
selfish, ungrateful,
nine
Were whole? lepers made they healed and The nine No. body? lepers were their not leprosy. Their sick souls were than
appeal
"nine
the
are
"Christian
to
"Mental
Healing,"
ten"
of
out
made
hath
sick,
sinful
and
spirit
soul
healed
only healed,
more
any healed
bodies
of
that
(?),"Magnetic Healing," Healing," etc., and for the same
Science"
"Divine
reason.
Not
than
more
man-controlled
and
moral
vipers
ten"
of
disease
of
Do
to
(as described who
be
not
have
been
of
evidence whose
give
God
shall O
healing soul
the
for
deeds
is
of
God's
of sin
been and
cast
"
to
mercy
the
out, then,
many "nine out
ness, stubbornGod
calls
the
in
body." that
evidence
no
healed
man.
in
simply
But
if the
return
leprosy
of
the
that
or
is
to
soul
we
aovl
refuses
"the
will
body
source,
sinful
healed, have
the
until
been
whatever
victims
the
Chart)
done
Bodily healing again^^ or thai we have from
if the
covetousness,
"
claim
ever
of
for
self-righteousness,
body has the glory,
vipers
the
Sinner's
these
of
any
one
any
deceived. "bom
soul
of
in the
the
spirit. All bodily healing, the
the
claim
"account
an
for
possessed
keep their chief sins insincerity and tUem
apply to healing can And body.
of
even are
those
who
ten
methods
(honestly) healing, of sin
in
one
and
heart-"
sinneth
it
die." the
diflference
having
between
the
skin-deep leprosy
the case of the "nine was lepers," as body removed, "whole'* the being made and ^by spirit,soul and body ing! Laws of Healof God's the "faith of God," and knowledge that Remember fell, spirit,soxd and body, man as must even through the ignorant intellect of man, so, man soul and and will be restored body by the all^spirit, of Christ." mind "the of God wise knowledge and dom wisthis And until we receive mind, knowledge,
of the
"
"
"
"
"
of
blind," Wherever
Christ,
must
we
healing
concerning we
go,
we
find
"blind
remain of
spirit
nopeless
or
victims
leaders
soul of
of or
the
the
body.
igno-
FOR
called
so
self-exaltation, of the
self-conceit, and
stubbornness,
ranee,
We
healers(?).
find
could
joints,which
21
BODY.
AND
SOUL
SPIRIT,
limbs
broken
located dis-
*'every whit
made
been
Lave
and
prevailed against ignorance, God's Laws of Healing against Satan's teachings of error. law for the healing of a God's universal and- invariable forth is to pour bone broken substance, at liquid bone this pouring to continue the points of breaking, and out, has sufficient until ered covquantity of this bony substance a knowledge
had
whole"
broken
the
But
hands,
to
in
will
time
foolish And
victim
of
death
and
to
pain
and
the
from
his
doing
left
are
the
out
solid
with
his
then
we
torture,
until
a
pouring always
drop
to
or
rewards
that
can
incurable
God
relieves
of
inspired teachings
sin.
drag apart
an
merciful
the
out
and
material
have
if
do
fails to
man
fanaticism
only
bones, Satan
e,,
limb
conceit,
bones pour
into
bones
if
part, i.
shortened
a
human
of
broken
bones; and
own
then
broken
ceases
unite
ever
is
victim
God
until
by
God
if the
his
broken
ens hard-
straighten them, or hold them intelligence sufficient, man
to
or
given
set
material,
mending the
has
it, to
use
the
at
them,
God
the
God
substance
this
man")
touches
never
"set"
place.
he so
God
Then
them.
re-unite
to
in **spirit
the
(through bone.
ends,
ignorance
fanaticism. have
We
joints called
broken
and
victims
been
of
the
"Cliristian
called
to
limbs,
who
see
persons left were
ignorance, egotism Science,"
Healing," which,
and,
alas!
healing by ''setting"the bones, the denying joints; the one miracle(?), contrary a demanding and
will
take
muscle.
If
these
hopeless, lifelong fanaticism
also of
alike, refused
of
bone
and
the or
aid
"unbelievers"
so-
vine ''Di-
of
God's
laws
the
cated dislo-
replacing God's
of
so-called
conditions, to
dislocated
with
own
in
the
other
laws God's
for laws
and break it in the after "dry bone" midst, bands end to each stretching and fastening strong rubber both and from sides of the the possibilit imbone, they will see human of bone a ever "setting itself," in the of foolishness of to answer (so-called prayer prayer the which draw faith). For, until contracting muscles a
OOI"'a
^=0.
the
broken
out
by
force
tlie
force, to
of
it.
for
claims kill
and
'*eat
the
sore
lips,
surfaces
through
to
the
God
Only
or
(?)
tallow,
mutton
keep
spirit
out
in
the
man.
air;
we
may or
but
put
nealing
cold
turn re-
a
greatest make
may
slippery all
be
The who
Doctors
by
stretched
place. those
stretched
never
can
are
heals.
flesh;'*
proud
out
its
to
are
be
must
there
bone,
Healing"
"Divine
to
rubber
bone
broken
the
enemies
broken
other
each
past the
as
same
its
replace
bone
the
of
ends
HEALINGS
OP
LAWS
false
bones,
set
on
cream
elm
raw
over
is
of
God,
CHAPTER
THE
body
"The God
does
the
Let
Him
disease?" He
"Glorify
says,
which is
bxeath
the
God
the
body
other or
of
drop
is
live
"we made
and
breathe
and
both
to
have
heart
to
being
that
it is all
Him,"
spirit
to
the
as
fact,
in
intellect,
one
that
moment;
demonstrated
our
and
save
moment
clearly
this
body;
create
"
no
blood
of
digested;
breathing
from
is
man's
is
of
parts
drop
can
man"
there
not
food
stop
or
that
tissue, of
our
withheld
or
move,
the
When and
came
which
spirit,
all
one
scientists
spirit.
**spiritin
and
or
of
and
soul,
heals.
God
had
sower
sowed
never
of
it, the
receive
Chart),
and
righteous
way,
whereby
every
hath of
all
the
in
tare, not
of
atoning and
"every
planted, God's
true
shall
it is and
praise
God,
sacrifice
plant be
children.
is
heart
wheat
the
world,
and
tares
while
and which rooted
God
always
that
will
(see
Sinner's
true
that
the
life
My
has of
"
vided pro-
Christ,
heavenly from
until
(23)
the
tares
he
up" And
enemy
while
seed,"
the
"
the
And
honest
every
the
seed,"
25.
good
But
etc.
in
:
sown
unrighteous
together,
grow a
has
enemy
"
in
good
13
but
Life
avarice,
anger,
Matt.
anything Word
that
the
"
sown
tares.
sown
sowing
hearts
given
plain
how
Father
and
comprehending
and,
must
doctors
either
can
power
flesh,
heal
your
which
create
can
or
gastric juice, by
man
has
the
of
builded;
which
bone,
of
atom
all
that
and
earth
on
power one
no
created
are
the
by
power
in
how
God
law
and
that
Remembering
of
His
body
your
But
**
does
through
you
in
dead."
How
bone?
tell
God
MAN.
spirit is
the
"
the
IN
broken
God's."
are
SPIRIT
without
uuite
IV.
the
every
god's
24
(sin) is taken
tare
healed
in
laws
made
save
as
spirit, soul
"the
healing
heart,
of the
out
this'law, **the prayer
of
of
soul
no
Spirititself
fectly perbecause
And
and
body. healing,
faith," for
of
be
can
maketh
be
not
can
intercession
for
us,
which be uttered/' Rom. 8: 26. not groanings can Physical healings take physical touch, place through mental through (or soul) touch, and through spiritual Divine touch. in of But, healing, God's or case every do the work; of Healing neither Laws and devil man nor with
root
can
through in his
tare,
one
up his
wisdom
own
heart,
or
"As
alas I in
the
thinketh
man
a
disease,
of
atom
one
power.
And,
is he."
so
remove
or
ing of heal-
matter
eth" "thinkdisease, without drugs, as with drugs, man false thoughts to-day nine disease-producing and for thoughts death-producing health-producing every and of ignothe serpents life-producing thought, because rance and self-assumption enter into every plan of man, "
"
well
however of
and
beguile
to
all idolaters
deceive
men.
of the
of
action
in
action
of
change
Every result
intended,
human
the
spirit in
the
is the
body Ignorance
man.
and
the liver, act upon drug medicines and wisdom, stomach, Knowledge, lungs, kidneys, etc. and declare God's Laws of Healing, and demonstrate, all the does positively, that the "spirit in man" prove, chemicals that the drugs (except in those eat acting upon and body), and destroy other substances, as well as man's
tradition
all the
that
declare
acting also, upon Take
Proof:
a
the
small
liver, stomach,
portion
lobelia,
of
and
thing. as
man,
saliva,
excrete
babe
The
quickly woman,
as
the or
which
with
of six man
child
months of
sixty
who
will
tobacco,
(?),and
filthy and poisonous medicines" man" (the only intelligent thing
other in
etc.
in
the
will
man)
"spit out" will spit it out, to
years not
senna, thing like lobelia, salts and defiled is deluded, a or opium, etc., "believe lie," i, e, to has a beguiled evil is good. and
of
spit castor
victim that
"spirit secrete
the or
The
age. out
or
every
vile
try to,
only vile
oil, tobacco, whom
"bitter
Satan is sweet
"
CHAPTER
THE
Whatever from
of
use
result
Doubtless
of
where take
why
by
the
expelled
from matter
of
becomes
strong
enough
The
of
let
God's
of
from
the
demons
power of
ease dis-
touch
in
change
the of
gone
out
who
"touched
whether
Jesus or
the
spake
spirit the
do
in
but
"spit the
by giving the
hand, effect
anatomical, (26)
body his
by
spirit between
batteries
is
body.
Him,"
source
paralyzed
its of
sympathy
weak,
of The
God.
of
the
an
two
wonderful
"
This
strong.
by
of
by
whatever
touch
can
the
whenever
from
Hence,
human
the
restoring
whether
and
and
re-enforced
is
spirit,
of
comes.
law
two
"
them,"
are
dead
spirit's
restored
paralytic
whosoever
bodies
work
the
spirit
by
and
human
Spirit
the
drugs all
the
instantly
activity
or
power
restored
spirit
in
spirit
increase
is
body
paralyzed
increased
is
poisons.
expels
out"
"cast
to
of
saved
ignorance.
weakened
that
body
taken.
life
deadly
whenever
ous poison-
a
every
die
also
poison.
already
been
which
dental inci-
the
and
body
For
body,
the
been
introducing
have
spirit by
diseased
and
by
thousand
a
human
the
the
poisons?
poisons, of
has
on
poisons
other
law
same
action
derived
been
ever
poison
saved
are
other
counteracting The
of
spirit's
lives
has
benefit,
form
the
HEALING.
OF
or
any
many
emetic, But
DOCTRINE
healing,
the
V.
of
Jesus
the
in
the
word
of eyes,
only,
that
had
pathological
faith
virtue
of
the
garment."
and
laid blind and
the
and
His
the
of
is sensation
"perceived by
power
healing,
touch
or
healing
healing hem
the
all
bodily
mind,
of
touch
all
of
law
imparting
or
hands were
woman
And
upon
healed;
physiological
FOR
changes "spirit used
was
with
body
the
were
in
man" in
the
in the
was case
;
for
the
the
healing.
of
cases
substance,
flesh
through
The
force, which be
touched
can
not
the
spirit; for
**the
dead."
spirit is
is revealed
all
27
BODY.
AND
vehicle,
except
power,
without
SOUL
same
every
healing
Herein
SPIRIT,
mystery
of
God's
Laws
of
ing Heal-
soul and The spirit,and body. "spirit in man" is the life and for the And only healing power body. Ghost the the is the and Christ Holy Spirit of God for man's only healing power Hence, spirit and soul. by law whatever or means we can bring man's spirit the of God breath to flow freely through the weak, diseased, paralyzed body of man, or healing will take place for the obedience and of faith body; while by whatever means is brought the Spirit of God the spirit,soul, or to touch body of man, healing takes place .for spirit, or soul, or laws of God's body, according to the fixed healing, by for soul, and for body. faith, for spirit,and the nessed of the Hence, healings witstrange phenomena and to-day by the various opposing "systems" of The rubbed healing. spirit-exhausted body is touched or is full and ^'magnetized" by another or body, which ning runwith life spirit,health, life; and immediately over and health and sick, according to imparted to the weak are healer" the the "the who and of touches, spirit power the harand mony faith, of the one touched, spirit response, or This between the two. of spirit induced principle the of all healing is illustrated for man by magnetized all other also which has the of steel, magnetizing power it is rubbed steel against which touched, according to or And the law of magnetization for steel. not only has the other steel, but steel the to magnetize magnetized power it has the power the same to so impart "gift,"to or power, the magnetize^ "brother" steel, that it also can magnetize for
"
"
"
"
other
steel.
illustrate
the
And
so
even
higher spiritual touch own the "gift of receives V)e used through may
does
this
same
wonderful
law
healing, by God's man's to man spirit; by which he also the Ghost," Holy by which both "the to laying on of hands"
law
of
miraculous
god's
28
heal
and Mark
19:6; The
16:
Lord
of
gift
that
others.
to
knowledge the
as
Hab.
See
of
the
hearts
Acts
the
for
glor}^
now
cover
when
And
Healing and
of
waters
2:14.
Laws
filled
then, indeed, shall
'*the
earth,
11:9;
God's
has
healing
same
fill the
Isa.
knowledge and body
of
8.
shall
sea."
the
the
declares
prophet
the
of
impart
laws
the
soul,
spirit,and
minds
all
of
people, place of
the
take the glory of the Lord the and fear of men, the peace thoughts and praise and take of God the and confusions of place of the divisions Every healing of spirit,or soul, or body ignorant men. is the result of God's Laws and of man's of Healing; never the
or
The
devil's
of
action for on
spirit law of healing
same
Every case through
theories
the
is
'Tower
no
of
on
for all
in
governs
of
the
spirit through without
thought Thought,"
is
mind," the
wisdom.
or
power "Mental
partial healing
or
"influepce
spirit
there
claims
or
that
Healings." takes place
the
result
power
of
spirit.
of
the
thought;
See
lectures
etc., etc.
body that takes direct the "anointing," to place or answer prayer, the ^'laying on of hands," heals by obeying the same or in the healing of soul physiological laws of God, as shown and of "the or use through the agency body spirit in And
of
healing
every by the
spirit,soul,
or
"
man." And
let
now
prejudice, One
tries
the
body,
however
vain
but
look
is
to
at
"God's
of the
be
healed
healed
when
mind
Lord.
Others,
Laws
ignorant
Mental through fails, after trying magnetism is instantly healed by "laying to
the
in
us
who
of
may
we
Healing"
be
out withlaws.
of those
by magnetism
applied to the is applied magnetism Another Healing. utterly soul and to both body, but
try
on
in
of
hands"
vain
man's
in
the
name
prayer
oi
of the for healing body, are anointing healed ailments of physical by the application of God's laws of mental physical "magnetism." Ignorance and or for these facts. account not ])rejudice can faith
and
the
FOR
But
knowledge of healing.
laws
SOUL
SPIRIT,
and
can
AND
does
29
BODY.
for each
account
these
of
cerned; Spiritual things are spiritually disintellectual things, intellectually; and physical the things knoweth man things, physically. "For what
of
a
so
the
the
save
man,
of
things
God."
1 Cor.
spirit of
Grod
spiritual anoint faith
belief
condition
with "
knoweth
no
Even
is in
him
?
but
the
Spirit
man,
of
2:11.
intellectual
The
which
man
for
does
spiritual
oil, and
pray until the
(?),in vain
not
man's
soul into a any we healing. And may intellectual **prayer of
bring
spirit,the heart,
is touched
for
spiritual healing. And appeal in vain to the flesh, the body, the we may human of soul or sympathies, for healing or conversion for of Healing spirit. But whenever obey God's Laws we the spirit,or soul, or body knowingly, or ignorantly miraculous the Lord! Praise Yes, healing is done. for all healings for praise the Lord spirit,or soul, or And only that "old serpent" refuses to say. Amen! body. because he also claims to be a **healer" to "put (?);claims "
"
on
and
take
off* disease." illustration of the gives another healer spirit. The 'spiritualistic
Spiritualistic healing law of spiritacting upon feeh the
disease,
"takes
is relieved.
person
This
on
the
disease," of which
is also
true
of
all
the
sensitive
sick or
the disease," healers. negative magnetic on They "take the action, by which through a law of sympathetic nerve diseased from "nerve aura," or spirit,is transferred one another. the disembodied And devil, or body to spirits have with such with to do (?), no healings than more healings by the **prayer of faith," or laying on of hands. God's laws does of spirit,through the spirit in man, all the healings, perfect or imperfect, ever effected by any of these methods of healing. The "positive" healer, on the contrary, drives out the ease, of disdisease, without feeling a single pain or symptom because is filled with he of life a superabundance force But the spirit healing power. positive healer become his overflowing, when a negative "healer" may "
"
3
30
god's
laws
healing
of
health-giving, disease-driving weakened
exhausted,
or
(spirit)in
another
the
that
so
has
force
spirit
diseased
become life
nerve
finds
into his unresistready entrance ing weakened spirit and body. And what is true of all bodily healing is equally true If the mind of all mental and is filled spiritual healing. false with teachings, the soul prejudice, ignorance and will seek in vain for healing of soul spirit,until God's or Great Ghost is invited the Holy in, Search-light own "
"
to
cast
whatever
out
temple
sins
whether
"
healed,
saved,
and
mind
of
hold
sway
in
mind
the
soul
be
can
^'spiritualpride," of
commandments
or
Humility (not the of can humility) alone for healing, of wisdom,
heart.
or
of
vanity
No
while
devils,"
of
in God's
still remain
heart
or
sanctified
and
false belief, "doctrines men,
soul
the
of
humility or pretence and place of knowledge soul or spirit. And soul hears when the voice of the any Master the direct does not to (in his heart) and stop of entrance, man-devised Holy Ghost through some way that soul will be healed spirit,soul and body, "according ing. of Healto his faith," and according to God's certain Laws take
the
If
of
organ
any
lost
has
he
the
destroyed, it will been spirit) has against knowledge, back
the
same
youth. body.
And
"God's
Laws
"As
sick
in
is "born will
die the
all
we
also men
"
see
the and
"Behold
wholly
restored.
wasted
and
in
restored.
be
not
been
has
be
born
spirit,soul again,"
he
body not
it will
eye,
If
partially
or
life force
the
If
(the
sins ignorance, or the laws of God not always give may full measure he gave of vitality which to soul, and so we reap," for spirit,and we sow, law of to the most now we come important of Healing."
babe
Every
an
and he
will
know, of
doctrines
I stand
he
but
at
will and
devils"
to
the
and
soul.
door
and
sinful
"
the*'second
body" the
"
only which death"
"traditions
contrary
knock;
man
Not
of thebodv
die
sick,
is born the
death
soul
"both of
the
world
except
body
die. "
fallen and
body,
first death
death
this
into
of
sins
if
of
standing. notwith-
any
man
FOR
hear
My
and
will
Have
SPIRIT,
voice, and
him, the
"opened heart (spirit) and strength (body)? again," and we are we
and
with
he
mind
(thoughts)
If
we
freed
the
from
He
soul
of the
vipers
him,
to
Rev.
of
3
into
come
and
born
are
in
come
Me."
Has
door"?
so,
31
BODY.
door, I will
the
open
with
sup
AND
SOUL
:
20.
our
(will) and Spirit, **born
the
"Sinner's
another.*' with fellowship one And sin of the Ye until be born must again." every soul is "rooted healings will not save up," the so-called man's soul the "second is death," for there body from or One'*which is able soul and to destroy both body in hell." and
Chart,"
"have
**
Matt.
10
Now for
28.
:
the
of healing, application of these methods and And of disease for spirit, soul body. the wisdom to discern Spirit give the reader
comes
the
cure
God's
may
only
**way and
true
If
Magnetic or physical touch, so
far of
"the
healer*'
If Mental
to
except love," "God's
Healing
of
them.
is
sought
use
health
and
be
air,"
the
of "God's
power
the
Physical Healing
spirit as
one
of
prince
life" in
to
open
they
as
seeker
the
become
"the of power kept free by the
the
are
wisdom"
through
and
purity."
"God's
jected subare appealed to, the afflicted of mental the to teachings and spirit conditions healer the mental good or bad, pure or impure, wise or And if the Faith foolish. to, Healing systems are resorted seeker is also the still the health to subject more ful powerfalse beliefs if the of forces and bondage spiritual filled with the of "the *'healers" mandments comspiritual errors are is
"
of men"
or
"doctrines
of devils."
soul is safe to place no "pitch defiles," and its body, soul or ual spiritspirit into the physical, mental or direction ofanother,forthehealtouch, manipulation or of is bom ing of spirit, soul or body, except that "healer" In
God.
soul
word,
a
"By can
without condition Hence
from
among
their come
fruits en
rapport
becoming ^good or the Holy
know
more
less,
or
And
them." with
(sympathy)
subject,
another to
that
no
soul, soul's
bad.
"
them"
shall
ye
Ghost "
from
warns
all
all sorts
people of
to
healers,
"come
who
out
have
32
god's
not
hearts,
pure
must
filled
with
form
the
to
^'filled with healers.
For
"healer"
into
"guide us Ignorance is
heals
the
by
has
(?)
in
the
whatever
healer touch
defile
will
operated or
upon, evil; so that of his
heights
moral
claimed
"
to
he own
his
will
own
can
elevate
pure
life,or
his
them
own
to
their
own
moral
Galatians,
or
of
those An his
by
the
and
and
desires, whether
the
soul
"the
they
immoral
bodily
his
will
healers"
controlled, the
to
effect
power elevate
level,
who
presence, mesmeric
desires^f
it down
the
unclean
The
drag
"Mental impurity. in their results subjects through thoughts), by which (mesmeric of
form disease, directlyor
healing. directly, through the
the
other
any
for
the
body subjecting
through
upon
touched
is
the
than
etc.,
healing.
for
subjects
made
condition
moral
influence
them,
the
method
controls and
the
whatever
mon'
And
foolish
"O
by proxy. you?"
it
devil
heal.
or
heals
never
no
the
(that
Healing"
say
and
doctrines."
devil)
no
only the healings Magnetism^'
devil
with
false
laws
or
the
contact
will
healer
be
doctrine
Divine
The
that
*'healers," will
with
Animal **
bewitched
Remember
'*
with
Healing. indirectly, in person hath
Gods
do
to
do
to
false
(of
who
"
heal,
they
"
teach
doctrines"
your disease.
more
Holy Ghost, can Scriptural healing.
Scientists!"
they
of God
the
evil
nor
Word
the
to
contrary
sin
nor
of Faith
come
of every system which their of error,
concerning
"false
Science
has
For
followers
Christian
the
than
no
Christian
beliefs.
sound
doctrin"
devil, because
heals
healer)
who
blind
every however
''See
devil,
disease
devil
the
truth"
friend, their
Hold,
devil
all
says, no
be
must
and
daily experiences. Word only, as interpreted by
God's
there
teach,
may
life's
or
a
find
we
healing, accepting
of
hands,
clean
and
healing
there ''perilous times," and are many false of teachings for healing. be born which soul is again." Only that the Holy (Jhost is safe to give healings in any sick in spirit,soul And only those or body. the Spirit" can discern the true the false from
antichrists **Ye
of
in
living
are
we
laws
the
of or
one
good to
the
depths same
thought" degrade
And
"faith
GOD*S
34
is still in
terms
teacher.
The
LAWS
HEALING
OF
and
spiritual blindness, is the spirit in man
himself, a for good or is "yielded
needs,
only force for evil in man. And when*5^at spirit force and but when to obey" God, it is pure holy, like God; like the unholy, '^yielded to obey" sin, it is impure and author becomes of sin; and **psychic,"superstitious, selfdevilish. With the righteous, arrogant, unclean, same kill those those love, and we spirit in man caress we we With this one hate. God we only force in man, serve or devil
the
as
ceedeth
and
fruit."
fruit
Matt. fear
hath
in
love.''
perfect Fear!
men-made tion''
The
(?).
plain paths
the
darkness
error)
shall
the
How
wonderful! sick
are
healing, souls;
says, of God
a
a
for the
Healer!
"this
Fountain
in
and
"sanctificafear
to
follow
there
is
no
ments "command-
the
darkness
the
much
(ignorance
with
what
to
(see James call
the
for
soul
shall
mercifull
him
prayer raise him be
How
"Is the with
of
faith
up;
and
forgiven him." "If completel
excluded.
no,
to
come
forgiveness '*No,
says: elders of
the
to
idol
15)
anointing
And
as
human
5:14,
him,
Lord
them
some
sins, they shall
of
of
men,
which
follow
more
so
as
will," let him
and
made
truth.
How
;" not
"Whosoever
What
is
question
committed
have
any
there
sick, and
if he
cause be-
minds
of
or
blind
the
to
you? let him among let them over ; and pray Lord. of the the name
save
his
fear:
fills the
fear
God,
sick
oil, in
is not
of
fear
God
Word
feareth
worshipers
of
not
or
a
of
The
teaches. any church
not
Word
the
what
do
light
it is
Hence,
Word
in which
than
that
and
followers
all; but
at
out
healing, salvation,
of the
of men," and
followers
blind
rupt cor-
by
casteth
Idolatrous
of
tree
is known
tree
the
4: 18.
Fearl
systems
things
love
He
1 John
idolatrous
the
"Perfect
torment.
Fearl
the
for
the
make
pro-
make
'Either
*
else
or
these
brethren,
My
good;
mouth
same
3:10.
corrupt;
12:33.
the
of
James
fruit
his
his
and
be."
to
so
"Out
cursing.
and
blessing
ought not tree good
all
choose*.
we
not
healing"
of
sin.
so," is
the What
cries
only
Fountain
the
for the
a
for
Saviour!
of enemy sick saints.
FOR
SOUL
SPIRIT,
S5
BODY.
AND
the
sinning saints; only for the members religious body" or religious profession (?). No whether far they may have backslidden, or .^'born of the ever Spirit," if they only ever and
Christ,"
is
it
for
but
them;
those
for
of
**some how
matter
they
were
"professed have
who
never
sinned then heavenly gift" (Heb. 6:4) and and fallen, they have right to the **prayer of faith," no either for healing of disease, or for the forgiveness of sin." This is of God; adding to," and "taking from," the Word God and honor does such false teachings, and not ing "wresting. of healof the Scriptures,"by "many mighty works" And the blind teachers to to resort compelled are greater "dissimulation" by teaching that the unhealed claiTn healing, even while with must asthma, wheezing "doubled with with rheumatism," helpless paralysis, up with limbs and broken with sumption. condisjointed, or dying "tasted
the
of
*'
Claim
healing until
Christian
And
will in
faith,"
the
or
health,
of
city of disease, the health.
But
"cZaims"
health, if
if
e.,
claim
in
we
be
fact,
to
is neither
a
false
deny system.
healing, by
faith), i\iQ claim that
we
we
in
us
the
in
the
city
unless And
Jerusalem.
now
are
still
are
Jerusalem
in
get
is
foolish assert
we
apparent if ^we
claim
we
really puts
will
until
that
that
(or
most
(?) (which
have
while,
never
Jerusalem
toward false
we
we
i,
the
claim ing" "Heal-
of
system
declares
faith"
healing,
the
city
indorsed
declare
"naked
Any
Science
health,
"faiths"
bring
and
Christian
claim
many
"blind
Job
don't
but
Healer;
your 13:15.
scientific),that
nor
and
disease
for
copied
so-called
of
errors
healed. has
which
Christ
of
we
go these
before
the healing takes healing place, the sick robs of future faith for healing, except in those the is given where few Spirit of assurance cases by the before the healing. And when the victim Spirit Himself limb dislocated broken of a fails to joint or recover and the of ignorance and through anointing prayers
fanaticism, victims' sin
back
healed,
for
these
faith of in
it
false
healers
by assuring all," or
spite
of
their God's
them
(?) try that
limbs
natural
to
"there
would laws
increase is
some
their secret
be
miraculously
to
the
contrary.
god's
36
What
says all
healed and
the
healed
them
healed
all.''
I
to
not
came
Matt.
but
all
call
the
followed
Him,
and
He
healed
them
all"
And
enemies
He
In
not
righteous,
13.
yet, God's
of
disease,
devils/'
Matt.
fact, Jesus
Jesus
need
of
He
with
all.
nnners.
"And
"
manner
**And
and
whole
9:12,
"Divine
12: 15.
sinners
self-sanctified
and
and
healing?
possessed
Matt.
any be
**they which
that for
saved
or
for
great multitudes
devil-possessed
"
God
sickness
were
"And
healing
of
of
of
which
24.
4:23,
Word
manner
those
laws
Himself
never
declared
physician;
a
but
sinners
.
to
.
.
ance.'' repent-
self-righteous of Healing say
many Laws
is
the giveness forHealing" only for the Christian ; and of sin, through the "prayer of faith" and ing," "anointis only for sin/uT Christians. did Mark that believe shall not Why lay say, "They hands church-members" But "the on only? Scripture be and these not broken," can teachings against Christ Word and God's of met by the facts that all manner are in all of sinners, healed diseases, manner are to-day, obedience faith in, and to. His through promise that believe shall the sick lay hands on [saints **they which if they "confess recover;" and sinners] and they shall or sins sins. their Praise they shall be forgiven" their The His Scriptures alone are authority as to holy name! how to whom If "anointing with oil" shall be given. or
onlv
in
one
of
sick
are
to call enough of hands," laying on
faith
of
name
the
Lord.
Whenever
any
be
for the or
is
guide
'elders
of
no
all
for
the
God's
Laws and
question faith, that if
he
touch
"commandments
or
of
faith
soul
and
may only the
of
fact. be
If
healed,
mental
or
the
respecter of persons.'^
for
tradition,
for the
oil," in of
then
spirit,soul, or body, then, healing take place for spirit, or soul or body. question of intellectual belief, conceit, dogma, a
either
have
who
church, with
anointing
touches
dictation,
will," and, "If
the
"the
"God soul
*
man's
"Whosoever
Word,
you,"
among
under
anointed,
the
benefit, let God's
receives any
ten.
any
men." soul
spirit,soul intellectual
but touch and
Healing, only, will It is not
teaching, simply a spiritual body; but
faith, he
can
FOR
37
BODY.
AND
if he
physically; while only intellectually and receive bodily physically only, he may
healed
be
SOUL
SPIRIT,
is touched
ing heal-
only. first law
God's
This
creation.
breath
of
sustaining
just
by
seeking
ever
here
long
as
father
life and
health,
in
come
believes soul any of lies" concerning
darkness
"walk
and
love
restore
of the organ conflict with "false
God's
such
light
as
love
human
body.
Satan
God's
soul He
for
;
of
and
out
come
is in
the
as
**the
truth,
to
is
and
any
teachings"
love,
for
the
in
our
womb
that
so
even
"
or
as
in ",olir mother's
the
laws, it is impossible
God's
And
unconscious.
direct
being,"
our
thankful
arrogant,
formed
His
by
express ness." likeHis
"after have
in dead.
or
the
of
ever
us,
for
and
move or
and
portion
we
body,
God's
"
created
that
love our
and
is
well, living
or
humble
God
of
law
the
of love;
heal, cleanse, repair and
to
diseased
every And
sick
or
life
of
love
live and
we
conceived
breath
the
in
our
conscious
were
the
law
same
unjust,
or
unthankful, bodies
Him
"in
For whether
the manifest
life, is
of
purpose
And
is the
of
asleep,
or
is love."
**God
law
first
awake
operation,
healing
of
of
light,"
"have
with As the serpent another." fellowship one does beguiled Eve through her intellect and will, even so "all men" he beguile and deceive the will and through and
intellect God
to-day. that
declares
ground
and
serpent
declares
the
earth,
every Roman
orthodox
there
shall
Rev. die
second
be
stripes all
ye thine
day were
Roman
faiths.
But
the
death. and
healed."
iniquities;
Who
healeth
it." "
of See and
"Reformed"
or
declares 2
"Ye and
Peter shall I will
that
3:9; not
ment tor-
"time eternity, when declares: "By whose "Who 2:24. forgiveth all thy diseases." Ps.
throughout 1 Peter
the
slime
Religion"
3:15;
serpent immortal, are Word
into
of the But
the
of
Word
John
dust
2:7.
soul
Catholic
God's
God's
the
body
declares:
Ye
night
a
Catholic,
death.
second
a
longer."
no
of the
of Gen.
immortal
an
of
soul."
formed
Catechism
20:12-15.
you
shall
breathed
Protestant
the
"God
creed
be
was
living
a
that
"Full
Deharbe's
man
became
and
formed
**
38
CK)I)*S
The
103:3.
God
serpent
also
"I
says, me."
has
HEALING
OF
LAWS
heal
diseases
by
the
given so says Superstition, Ignorance, Prejudice, Vanity, I make Self-righteousness,etc. God's Word says, "I kill and power And
I wound
alive:
"I
says,
also
wound
But
even
Jesus
where
cheer;
thy
walk," hesitate
to
to
be
Matt.
exalt
give heal
diseases.
whole
revealed
same
of
through
the
while,
the
for
and
prejudice the
with
one
healers
and
.
that
claim
to
as
he,
the although tures Scripto (no power) forgive sins
sins
"
"doctrines
of
devils"
is
the
of
man.
occur
under
and
creeds;
Each
one
their
human
and
of their
of
or
has
healing.
He
each the
one
devil;
nothing has
lights"
"false
las formu-
darkness
the
in
that
sees
hence,
and
devil
for the
kind
any
the
being error is fighting
ignorance;
with
do
good
of ignorance idolatry of men,
of
as
fact, each
in
to
beliefs other
of
self-taught leaders laws prejudices concerning God's
salvation healing and healings do, sometimes,
denounces
Word,
be
the
liigh
these
of
of intellectual
and
Arise .
even
ignorance
"beliefs," and
of human
God's
by
.
power
secret
eases." dis-
Satan,
palsy, Son,
and
forgive
to
and
serpent
away
thee.
of men, so
the
take
silence
to
For
devil
on
of the
9:2-8.
the
power him the
The
sick
prejudice
and
serpent,"
forgiven
the
also, has
as
sins
And
32:39.
put
"
old
**that
to the
the
and
men,
heal
and
"said
etc.
Deut.
devil, is brought
and
antichrist,
I heal."
and
ever what-
do
to
of
and
only
foolish
teachings. heads
God's
envy.
name
;
"0
and
My
foolish
healing
Belial?
he
beguiling often
too
Word
glory
says,
will
I not
Galatians!"
"exalteth
that in
hearts
and
and
is the
work
Satan's
himself," disease!'*
2 Cor.
O and
fills with "I
the
am
foolish
Isa. 42: 8. of
worshipers "to
concord
whose
prejudice, jealousy Lord is My ; that
to another."
give claims
What
"healers,"
the
of
him
share
God's
glory
hath
Christ
with
6:15.
does not why any heal of healing more system devotees? man-worshiping
man-made
And
than "
man-directed
or one
Because
in its
ten
of
its blind
advocates
are
FOR
far
SPIRIT,
filled
more
with
''love Men
teach
may blind
through Word
ideal
spiritual
cliarity,
pride,
humility,
justice
and
figures
formulas
for
self-sanctification,
faith,
God
of
with
39
BODY.
or
and
J^
truth
the
of
AKD
ignorance,
fear,
than
vanity,
human
SOUL
sanctified
has
them
'^through
the
until
but
etc.,
healing,
truth'*
the
by "
the
destruction
Sinner's
of
Chart)
attribute
every
they
will
of stand
each
in
sin in
soul
the
vain,
"as
(see oracle
an
"
of
God"
(?),
false For
of
teachings as
long
as
and
his
this with
co-punisher, called"
his
teaching
healings powerless
human
Christ
before
and healers the
of
up
God, remain
people.
theories,
or
traditions
holding
and
thoughts
own
and
Belial, so
as
long an
or
idols.
human
a
will oflence
the
co-healer,
"falsely to
or
so-
God,
CHAPTER
VI.
AND
TRUTH
"And
let
now
nut
only
but
for
for eternal
life (which
his
in
Man,
can
take
the
water
shall
not
die,
you
forth
eat, and
sword
life, for
I
of he
life"
Satan), out
serpent's is
the
of
the
answer
always (40)
Tim.
Jesus
river
throne to
the
was
of these same,
there God clear
"Oh,
of
the and
tree
the
statements
I
don't
the
of
tree
"Who
only
same**tree
from
"lest
man
of
power
22:2) of
life"
Lamb. of
of
"
that
(Rev.
God's
that
the
under
an"
"murderer
says:
gxiarded
declare
Scriptures
the
And
6:16.
w^aj
[man life,
forever.'
Christ)
forever"
the
believe
live
carefully
so
live
and
of
side
1
of
he of
tree
eating
must
men
every
.
the But
from
Eden
of
lest
don't
the
out
Garden
.
ye
Which
turned
: 22-24.
**/
know
drove
He
life
man
'all
God
eat
3
says,
(speaking
(which
should
either
Gen.
that
teach
Word
which
of
says,
life freely."
opened." the
of
also
take
prevented
immortality."
and
God
and
eternal
God
doth
*'So
.
hand
body,
for
will, let him
God
eyes
east
of
tree
forever."
flaming
"for
sword,
the
beginning"
the
hath
of
of
says,
the
flaming
a
water
your
Word at
will
Whosoever
says,
have
God's
and
or
simply
the
freely;
shall
way
live
God's
devil
placed
his
take
death
but
is
God,
him
the of
and the
keep
from
Hate.
He
and
put
Will
believe?
cherubim, to
Love
And
22:17.
man;
Devil.
to
fight,
again).
Man
will, let
Rev.
die)
never
this
soul
spirit,
God
relation
"Whosoever
will
never
for can
live
in
grapple"
error
healing
present
(which
decdh
and
truth
EEEOR.
that
believe
"on
ing proceedBut
the
sin
the
Word
it; and
of
42
god's
chooses In
his
his
laws
"servants
healing
his
and
malignant
own
of fashion"
bodies
the
on
obey"
to
"headquarters
work
of
souls
thoughts.
his
lie executes
ous murder-
womankind
of
and
her
offspring. indeed,"
"Yes,
this
cries
seducer
first
of
"give
woman,
and dressing, the squeezing, pinching, deforming and body preach defiling of woman's you may any religion (?) you choose. Faith Healing (?) included, and I failures and will laugh at your mock at your ignorance, and God's Laws Until infirmities of misery." Healing are all so-called for woman's understood, body, healing (?) the
me
"
will
continue
seek
relief while
and
human
to
fail in
nine
cases
in the
dark
recesses
assumption. The first requirement all free her body from direction
any Son be
shall vain
make
to
how
defiles
body,
of God"
for
herein
"iife" of
woman;
by strength
which
deforms
known
faith"
or
the
faith
not
heal
defiled
of
the
Squeezing
womanhood.
spirit of
until
and It
disease causes
"weakness" the
and
fountains
of
offspring
and
also
form
all
of
waist
life;
all
the so
prayers saints of
It
very all
"blind of
all of
earth,
deformed
of Satan
woman
that
the
of
the
bands of
natural
away. work, bodily frame-
defiles of
and
man,
corset
the
of
surely taken
the
of
slaves
of the
ignorant Satan-grasped, pinched, and
these
deformity
pity
female
one-half
diseases the
and
later, the
or
and
the
these
is
body
faith," with
healers
bodies,
of
or
to
sooner
of
man
"naked
unloosed.
the
vitality of
functions
skill
direct
one-fourth
from
permanently, and displaces and
"Christ
on
from
**deeper things vs. Antichri8t,"and simply the efifects of compressing the of full respiravictims tion,
viz., it robs
and
organs of the
form
and
the
the
to
it would
As
victims
weak
deforming spirit,we leave
book
our
the
and
lacing soul
indeed."
free
is
woman
pressure, "whom lor
whatever,
be
show
of
and
confinement
shall
to
healing
the
manner
any
free
attempt
fashion
state
in
or
for
fashion
ignorance,
of
who
ten, of those
of
out
and
produces
can
and sin
are
ical phys-
of paralysis of every organ and club-feet, impotency, every sinfulness in body, soul and and
of such
defiled
bodies.
And
finally,
FOR
this
sin
age
science"
(?) the
open
would had
Do
of
can
soul
"The
Bible
Lev.
20:5;
Isa.
10:8;
12:10,
18; 6:7;
13:18;
Deut
38:1-8,
As
John
that
"denial
the
priests
by
their is
by
or
law the
reason or
heart
faith aione is
faith; the
his
following diseases
Ex.
Kings
2
32:39;
9:5,
8:7,8;
24;
in
mercy.
10:9;
12:10;
13:14;
4 14:3
Acts
14:9;
6
Luke
18;
heart
of
by
4:
14,
manifested.
which the
of on
heal
of
to
heals, through
in
"Christian your
in
does whatever
the
ing "heal-
the
diseases,
faith
it
place.
anointing heal,
object
are
relics
be
take
not
can
their
Science,"
"the
of
priests,
powerless
healings
head
hands"
believe
their
dead,
of
all
head
Scientists/"
the
by
the
Catholic
etc., will
Faith
he.'* of
who
Roman
falsehoods
faith
Faith
Christian
not
is
so
those
Hence,
by*
"laying
oil"
faith
the
all
and
12:40;
faith, for, "according the
the
of
and
or
fixed
body.
16:17,
disease.
Lourdes,"
their
by
you"
heal
relics
disease of
waters
healed
can
the
of
man
has
3:2;
5:13;
in
healing.
bring
hearts
"thinketh
alone
heart
6, 11;
4:47;
no
God
See
4:23,
Mark
9:2,
physical,
human
justice
or
28:27.
man
a
not
8:43;
the
temple,
cure
Matt
14:14;
doctors,
the
which
die."
of
the
devil."
obey
28:58-61,
21,22;
15;
10:38;
22,30;
laws
hood, woman-
obey"
"
and
cause
cut
remains
of
to
or
the
temple
the God's
7:7;
God's
of
it shall
to
22:51;
17:15;
this
for
according
15:26;
laws
sinneth
references
man,
the
that
Satan
by
we
His
glory
the
just penalty,
the
against
and
to
the
herself
for, until
spiritual
escape sin
flesh
doctors
and
"
"medical
destroy
and
power
longer
healers;"
skilful
^'yielded
the
world,
and
every
the not
deceived
intellectual
for
victim
"the
**faith
woman
been
body
which
in
most out
cut
woman's "
climax
a
43
BODY.
temple
its
to
have
be
not
blind
and
the
fashions
reached
employs
now
bodies,
what
of
has
"
AND
God's
deforming
of
after
age
SOUL
SPIRIT,
or
of but
unto
For with
because "belief"
VII.
CHAPTER
Christ's
"And
Jesus and all
And
Jesus
devoted
Jesus
gospel
of
casting
out
send
And
in
know
God
Jesus,
until
received
before at ere
after
the
Holy
he
the
fallen
the and
sick
be
to
made
saved
by
manifest
Jerusalem
(44)
shall
teach
And
in
the on
could
the
to
day
of
have the
received
to
of
heal
diseases
Holy soul
any
converted
thy
brethren."
Master,
to-day
after
of
[hast do
and
brethren,"
Ghost
healings
or
art
many
receiving
Pentecost.
brethren"
"strengthened
his
Ghost.
Therefore,
Holy
endued
the
things."
understood
or
thou
his
whom
all
you
Ghost.
his
Father
Truth,
of
Holy
strengthen
name
not
can
teachings
"After
the
until
neither the
the
God"
"knew
"strengthen
did
until
attempting
Spirit
Jesus,
of
Ghost]
whom
the
disciples
Peter,
Ghost,
had
the
receiving
to
Peter
He
them.
said
Holy But
be
Comforter,
even
understand,
or
works
mighty
disease"?
''preaching
to
people
should
"the
teachings by
Peter
And
the
He
name,
of
the
received
Jesus
disease
entire
healing
to
prepare
receive,
one
spiritually
the
My
cannot not
was
and
man's
ministry and
that
declared
world
the
of
manner
believed.
He
shall
and
spirit.
when
Ghost
kingdom,
sickness
of
whole
to
all
redeem
kingdom"
devils;
that
And
and
His
the
Holy
them
soul
their
24.
manner
to
the
of
and
in
teaching
gospel
4:23,
came
body,
of
nature
all
"healing
Because
the
Matt.
people."
why
the
sickness,
of
healing.
Galilee,
all
preaching
manner
the
among
of
about
went
synagogues,
healing
methods
with
power or
to
cast
from out
on
devils
"tarry
high," in
the
FOR
Jesus,
name
of
has
called
before
or
this
to
they follow
**because
Jesus
whom
those
condemning
work,
45
BODY.
AND
SOUL
SPIRIT,
after
not
us." And
good
the
since and
the
in
His
Jesus,
about
**went
doing
oppressed of the devil" (Acts who not those to-day follow in the footsteps healing" by "preaching and teaching and
healing
10: 38) condemn of
Himself,
Master
Master,
all that
since
But
name.
were
whole
"the
world"
turned
has
Physician, for *'your whole against Christ, as the Great body," and given the body into the spirit and soul and hands of earthly physicians, and "science, falsely sosoul "whole and called," we invite your body" spiritand God's and Word careful proofs of God's to the Laws, concerning of man the the threefold nature spirit ; because alone
is not
body
alone
And,
as
sin
"for the
man;
soul
is the
nor
man,
the fall of man, his also come death, it must
and
without
body
in
alone
body
under
came
under
And
in
that
this
liealing
atonement"
while
law
of
of Christ's
body"
pendent inde-
"
Ps. 103:
3; Ps.
7:29. of
proof *'the
through record
Eccl.
and
dead."
the
law
the
complete redemption, for "spiritand soul of any remedy "invented" by man. 106:29-30;
spiritis
the
the
yet
nor
man,
we
for have
sin
never
in
the and
Master's
sickness,
witnessed
one
name we
"
bear
case
of
of birth) through the direct agency "man's inventions" drug medication. Magnetic Healing, Mental Healing, SpiritualisticHealing,orChristian Science birth" the "new of a majority of Healing, we have witnessed have all the souls who of yielded their bodies to God's Laws Healing, as taught in the plain simple gospel of the Nazaand delivered to the saints." through the "faith once rene, left for our Lord Jesus The Christ various example of healing for the sick, according to His methods wisdom and of the suffering. "according to the faith" and needs first case of healing by Jesus is recorded The in Matt. "And, behold, there 8:2,3: leper and came a worshiped wilt Thou make clean. canst Him, saying. Lord, if Thou me hand Jesus and And touched him, saying, put forth His conversion
(new
"
I will; be
thou
cleansed." 4
clean.
And
immediately
his
leprosy was
god's
46
*^And
touched
And
the
healed
13)
unto so
healed
in
liealed, who shall
faith
the
centurion:
his
exercise
In
the
healing wife's
Peter's
the
(verse hast
thou
as
servant
was
the
servant
was
faitli
of
and
iny
only,
another, servant
8.
did
not
hast
third
case
claim
not;
or
"blind
in
thou
"Go
say
is healed
or
faith"
or
(see
if you "naked
touched
her
faith
or
thee."
15), that and
hand,
not
can
unto
and
14
verses
servant's
your
believed,so be itdone
"He
mother,
was
his
the
by
said
and
And
word
servant,
Jesus
way, And
faith, but
he
for
thy
hour."
faith, trust
real
centurion's
thee.
unto
! He
faith;" but"as
no
"Go
Verse
whether
the
centurion;
"Speak
Lord
the
healing,"
the
own
Jesus:
healed."
Praise
of
self-same
by
to
be
of
it done
the
not
said
that
case,
the
be
believed,
healing
of
him."
next
by
laws
of
the
fever
to
touch,
left her." touched
He
"And
lepers,on
the
even
had
Jesus
hand.^^
her
of
account
fear
no
force," animal
"psychic
"the influences, or hypnotic overcoming magnetism, And of the air." in presence" of "the prince of the power Him read that *'they brought unto that 16, we verse many possessed of devils, and He cast out the spirits with were His
and
word,
knew
Jesus
healing
sick,
and
whom man any heal the sick and
the
does to
has
devils
out
the
Jesus in
imaginations
of
''perfectlove in
of
devils
right to^attempt
no
Lord
real
the
or
men,
for
bodies
out
cast
of the
forces"
"psychic
in
or
sick."
were
of hands" "laying on of the commanding
in
souls
the
of
a.l that
fear
no
the
of
out
come
healed
name
casteth either
neither
Christ
has
"called"
His
of the
Lord.
"the
devil
/ear the
name,
and
ignorant
heal
to
to
And
of
prince and
/car;"
out
devils
men.
"the
of
forces
the
for
he
disease
Heb.
superstitious ness;" dark-
who/ears or
to
cast
Rev.
10:23-27;
21:7.8. Whoever that
the
"Magnetic perfect in but
that
fears devil
heals
Healing," love"
is still in
or
in
torment;
through
heals "Christian
through
"Mind
^because
fear
hath
lie,"
Science,"
Healing," is not for healing (1 knowledge or
a
or
yet "made John
torment"
4:18),
FOR
And
whoever
hands
the
of the
of
fears
the
on
ears
SPIRIT,
deaf," has
shall
know
Those
blind,"
her
*'lay his fingers in the
hand,"
*'put his claim
to
And
disease*
47
BODY.
to
right
no
healing
in
AND
**toueh
to
of the
eyes
Master
fc)UUL
to
be
to
follower
a
their
"by
fruits
ye
them."
Christ's methods
follow
who
healing by "laying of hands" the parts affected on (if needs on be) will reap the reward faith and obedience of their by seeing the deaf their thrust (into which they have fingers) ears which unstopped, and the blind eyes upon spit they have and in the name laid their hands, of the Lord, opened. And Himself if Jesus of the ground put clay, made blind man's and 9: 6), and one spittle, upon eyes (see John His
put whose
healing
His
Almighty
our
helpless
of
Nor
does
than of
touch the
and
the
fact
hand,
of
And
however
intellectual Christ
and
in
laws
of
he
32-35) and
healed
both
touch
miraculous
the
Old
His
said
methods
"Laws
his unto
sick. the
and
fingers
touched and
other
the
of
and
Father's
put
with
we,
example again "lay on
by
New
opposition, either to soul healing for man's
His
of
on
degree the importance any did Laws make of by God's
marvelous
sighed,
heaven,
in
personal
stand
spit
lessen
the
obeyed
7:
(Mark
Jesus
in
man,
laying may the
and
again
that
He
recounted
first
recover.
which
through
by faith" they never
and
sick
the
the
8:23-25), well hands, obey
(Mark
Teaclier,
blind
another
on
after
dependent
healings
Healing
ears
and
until
hands,"
our
time,
imperfect
was
hands
Lord
our
second
the
hands,
of
of into
''healings
Testaments,
the
physical or body. or Healing" when
the
man's
deaf
looking tongue, and him, "Ephphatha"
up "
to
"Be
opened." And
no
over
cases,
of
the the
fear
of God
less statement)
(much '
word
to
whom
can
unbelief
have
in the
have
could
thought these
healed
leading "out the multitude," by "speaking those who I* by "anointing only as and do gance arroto-day. Ignorance
spent so from "away
city," and word only," or hands," "lay on and
Jesus
that
He
soul
justify any
no
much
right
time
to
think
in
at aU.
If
any
48
these
laws
ought
to
of
as
"obedient
be
(Beelzebub) is
3
look
us
and
law
and
:
at
dispensation, a
His
he
as
perfect Man perfect example.
us
a
healing
for
Way
and
tion, salva-
for
as
Truth
was
"
Life
and
Father? Faith
of
case every be it unto
faith
healer
a
Mark
means.
soul
(of
Healiug
"
in to be found you" where God, no was physical touch given; all men against claiming that the devil
of
discern
yet,
the
"
His
to
to
your
warns
Let
anything
nothing
recognize
we
to
Word
Christ
obedient
as
while
give example to
that
obedient
"according the
knoweth
Brother"
death,"
follow
was
And
healing
(of himself)
"he
"Elder
our
we
He
knoweth
Spirit)
unto
and as
he
of
know."
Jesus, Will
laws
that
think
man
god's
body
with
him
through
any
22, 23. the
healings by touch;
one
in
God's
of
co-healer
or
"
the
and
new;
healing,
all involved
are
if
see
in
which
in
the
in
one
we
the
old
the
not
can
spiritand of
saving
human
life. In
Kings 17:21,
1
"stretched his
and
himself soul
And
Acts
Eutychus,
who fell
and
down
20:9, 10
still
And
given
in
2
dead
the
him, and
on
for
his
Kings of
went
up
dead."
him,
him."
child, and
flesh
Elisha
where
.
and the
he
physical touch brought to for
his
eyes upon he stretcned
child
lived.
waxed
is life
it says: put his
child, and
the
went
said, ^'Trouble
woman;
upon and his
of
.
named
Paul
And of
case
lay
the
eyes,
himself
and upon And
warm."
lived.
the child
the
Oh,
up
life is in
his
Elijah
man
young And
embracing
his mouth, upon his hands; hands upon
mouth
the
of the
Shunammite
and
times,
read
4:32-34, the
prophet
three
again."
remarkable
more
child
he
"And
a
we
child
.
taken
*'was
yourselves;
not
the
the
that
read
we
upon into him
came
in
22
Him
power that and
garment;
as
of
touch!
See
they might many
as
Matt.
only touch
touched
14:36: the
were
'*And hem
made
of
sought beHis
perfectly
whole."
Oh,
the
touches,
or
of touch, when faith is in power in the soul of the body touched!
the
hand
that
CHAPTER
THE
What, Laws
teach
the If
Faith
the
word
only,"
centurion's LordI
the
their
work
their
and
"faith"
of
those
who
when
their had
claimed
and
ask
lay
hands
a
on
this
faults faith
brother upon
the
sick
"laying C50)
which
on
tlie
of
the
the
only
not
find
if
the
anointed, ing accord-
God,
that
power
for
they of
who
has
hands"
and of
ordinance
above
they
did
"the
faith
that
nesses sick-
intellectual
the
admitting
"they shall
their
themselves"
find
they
sister
and
the
to
another,"
to
them,
by
"humble
them
one
or
of
for
of
sick," are
faith
do
forgiven
obedience let
name
the who
is
sinful
or
sins
their
then
"anointing,"
Healing,"
elders
the
save
the
for
claim
may the
ing heal-
in
sin.
sick
the
traditional
outward
In
of
itself
in
those
or
God,
of
cancels
or
shall
anoint,
Laws or
faith
for
oil"
with
of
faith
the
healed
words
last
atonement.
persons
call
them
them
prayer
"God's
Third,
hands
"let
then
the
manifest
not
self-righteous
"the
disease
heals
the
praise
demonstrated
have
through
does
"anoint
be
to to
disease
"Faith"
whatever
and
proves
will
"
church," LordI
healing
faith
ovm
then,
the
of
case
Christ's
and
"speak
to
"
when "
the
others;
finished"
is
that
so
in
as
is done,
taught
were
disciples.
healing
many
healing
of
for
power
sick,"
"
power
Second,
the and
**It
cross
of
"
applied?
they
as
and
truths
"saves
servant,
the
on
these
grasps
healing
prophets
be
to
God's
healing
of
they
are
of
His
by
HEALING.
methods
how
truths
and
OF
true
and
the
Lord
LAWS
the
are
Healing?
First,
by
TRIUNE
then,
of
VIII.
by
fessing "con-
that
they
not
of
believe
possess,
God," shall
to
lay
recover." for
healing
of
the
body,
FOU
SPIRIT,
51
hOhW
AND
SOUL
Only "the Spirit of the Lord direct this harp the hands" which can so play upon of a thousand wonderfully strings (which is fearfully and be made), that the healing force may intelligently and effectually applied for the re-tuning of the disordered Instrument, of harmony health ease disinharmony, or or as holds possession. Remember is this and "temple of God" body of man instrument health and the for an indwelling of God's no
man
dictate, in any
can
holiness,
for
or
Satan*s
case.
disease
uncleanness!
and
that
the
electric tery), batspirit battery (instead of an with and (instead spirit nerves, ganglia of nerves wires and of electric coils of wires), through which are all forces of electric (instead conveyed forces). spirit Remember that this wonderful most thought, and in all the earth highest expression of God (man), is governed intellectual mechanical and by as exact spiritual laws the galvanic as battery and engine or steam govern boiler and steam engine. Remember laid whenever that "healing hands" are which the brain, the head (or spirit boiler) of man, upon is one of spirit coils (nerve ganglia), mass responds to that touchy according to the power (spiritforce or faith) of him who and of him who is touched. lays on the hands of the head, every By touching the crown part of the force is affected the as body of man through nerve tainly ceris
body
a
mere
"
"
the
as
electric
battery, according of the
If
hands
of
in
diseases the
conducting
on
any
part
does
removed power rest
in
not
from
the
man),
then
directly
upon
electric
tion of the battery, the condipower the distance mitted. wires, and to be trans-
effect
head
will
and
touch
of
hands"
(the
seat
hands
diseased
be of
of
cure
a
let the the
head,
body
on
the body by upon is sufficiently great,
bear
to
the
upon of the
health-giving power if the But **laying
prayer,
the
from
the
to
spiritforce, brought
the
laying
is transmitted
force
removed
the
spirit.
the upon diseased of
all
pass
from
parts.
through head, organs
natural the
head
with far
spirit and
52
god's
For of
if your hands, healing rheumatism
instauce;
God"
for
hand,
or
healing
of
laws
down
of
or
hip, knee,
the
on
of
head,
shoulder,
the
foot, then
or
"used
not
are
elbow,
the
move
hand
the
to shoulder, hip or foot, and spine and across either the affected to rest on permit the hand part, or pass it again and the brain down the the of base again from until pain and disease spine, "to the seat of the disease" have been cast out; not by tlie devil and animal ism magnetand ignorance, but by God^s Laws of Healing, "
Remember
the
its reservoir
(battery
from
the
force
is distributed
"third
base
brain
to
every the have
the
blind
the
deaf
life force,
of
brain
or
eyes ears
for to
of
and
man,
the
spirit
oblongata (the spinal cord)
portion body; and for putting the
man's
of
"unstop
brain
of the
upper
healing,
the
medulla
the
organ the divine law
"
in
healing force, has
(the cerebellum)
through
and
nerve
law
boiler)
or
that
division"
force,
nerve
"
and them"
thrusting (as Jesus
the
hence hands
we
upon into
fingers did), and
for
the base brain of the intelligent hands over down and of healing force) thevspine (the great distributer for the which healing of any diseased ignorance, organ self-will and fail to heal, through their self-righteousness commandments their obedience of to "the prejudice and Laws for in God's because men they refuse to believe ; Healing. law God's of touch, in healing disease, is a marvelous and fear can not indispensable law which ignorance and
passing
the
"
take
from
God's
Word.
ers" heal"faith unbelieving" so-called themselves are dying to-day because suffering and of God) for of their fears of touch (as taught by the Word hands let the Spirit guide the healing disease. Always in touching the diseased parts to be healed. hasrevealed to His of all,God Finally and mostwonderful of this "tried have servants," who exchanged "the wisdom world" hsi^ provided for for "the that He wisdom of God," of communication far grander means and Himself another He has bodies than physical touch for His children, whose declared His were temples, for the indwelling of the Holy
Many
Ghost.
"fearful
and
FOR
In
the
another
God
midst
very
fountain
could
this
not
It
is
all convictions,
"solar
which
plexus,"
system.
nervous
by
this
of
reason
*'give God can plexus" (sunlight of the
heart
created
hearV^
man,
that
organ, "solar
his
give through
thine
has
God
sympathetic
created
so
spiritual Without
Me
the
as
"the
give
body
man's
53
BODY.
AND
known
of
says, "Son And God has
SOUL
of
center,
nerve
the
is
SPIRIT,
(love)
God
to
this
organ and conversions
or
speech
for
any with
miraculous
sympathetic, heart."
his
he
soul)
other
man
being.
God,
that
healings
are
eflFected. of the divine organ in of God's temple
This
holies is
love the
"
is located
the
man's
of
center
in
holy
body
of
and
"
the of motion, by touch, with nerves tion sensanutrition and in with them contact by coming the the distributer the of through spinal cord great forces to all parts of the body. nerve The the soul, "filled with Spirit,"/eefe the Spirit in the the soul feelsthe Spirit in the body in body. And tion proporto the of the degree of manifestation Spirit in the heart of God's center or temple. feel it in the midst in the breast We and of the body bowels then in every of "the temple of God." nerve
connected,
"
"
"
This also
the his
in
bowels" not
God,
whom
Let
no
with And
soul and
the
devil
and
spirit. All
as
to
God of
''miracles of
Eresence God's ody "
the seat
whom
he
heart
his
and
long be
of
Holy in
our
and
fallen
blind"
until
healing" His
own
as
defiled
are
in
And
race! both
for
Ghost
any
he
can
spirit,soul
the
"fall
and
he
loves
himself of
perfect healing "yields herself"
deformed
pity
how
seen,
neighbor
she
as
"if
seen?"
not
expect
the
hath
*'yearned
And
not.
was
"
woman
spirit
Joseph
is
Love,
Jacob
perfect healing for God right with
is made
no
Divine
of the
affections."
hath
expect
all his
leaders
human
brother, he
or
blind
manifestation
the
his
all
let
the
because
man
until
body God
of
"seat
love
man
love
for
organ,
to
in God into
body
fashion
body, pity the
or
soul "the
ditch."
the through plexus of man's
effected solar
temple
"
from
which
every
54
GOD*S
portion of the touching man's **hfe
LAWS
human
abundant"
more
quickened by giving healing
and which
"
Jesus
power
to
came
Spirit
God's
is
body
spirit
HEALING
OF
that
"
John
giva
10:10. But in
miracle
the
the
mysterious this
into
these
of
"miracles which
in
way
of the
sacred,
healing" consists finds Holy Ghost of man's body
spiritual organ ; hands" of necessitates the healing '*by laying on (without touching of the body, the healing by miracle touch), whether through preaching the Word, or by prayer, is brought or only, the Holy Ghost by speaking the Word is healed into the body of the sick and the disease without in some where those who cases physical touch, and any entrance
while
for
"the
pray who
of faith"
prayer
and
wisdom"
of
"all
of him
name
and
who
the
in
diseases"
preaches of
power
or
are
and
"lovers
unknown
unaccountable
to
and preaching prayer devils to depart in the
healing, "without to-day, "according prays
or
touch," to
in
commands,
the the
Jesus.
the use May Holy Ghost and fully-tested approved, all who blessing to worship all who
those
that and
result of
manner
faith"
know
disease
Jesus, do
of
name
when
even
however
But
(?),we
commanding
from
other.
the
to
healed, and
indeed!
Mysterious "man's
and
for
prayed personally one are
great distances
at
are
these God's God
commandments
of
than
more
truth"
of the
plain, scriptural,wellLaws of Healing for a than
more
and
man;
of the
for
tions "tradi-
men."
and ble invariaexact healing is effected by the most eflFected by "the laws and of spirit,soul body, whether natural laws of man's directly through spirit in man," lous through the miracuspirit,or effected by the Holy Ghost '*the Spirit through operation of God's spirit in All
man." illustrate
To his
thumb
presses of the from
or
clearly : fingers
If
the
base
the
brain
of
man
the
over
firmly upon the back medulla oblongata, of
the
base
of the or
down
makes the
knowledge of
neck,
the over
quick, spine, he
brain the firm will
places and
region passes excite
1?0K
SOUL
SPIRIT,
AXI)
55
HODV.
spiritaction
(ignorantly termed magnetic action) through of organic the most and centers important nerves nerve the If there is life, with following astonishing results: of the of the subject so lungs or stomach hemorrhage will be the touched, hemorrhage stopped by the hands the stomach) (lung and passing over pneumogastric action force, spirit force, life force, by which nerve nerve, is carried
to
the
And
the
diseased
or
weakened
results
will
follow
same
organs.
application
the
of this
law" simple ''natural (God's Law) of healing in asthma, all affections of the indigestion, faintings, and lungs or stomach.
And
sensitive
the of
seat
same
this upon life will restore,
friction
or pressure functional and
organic
often
instantly, the victim asphyxia, and apparently
of
epilepsy, paralysis, fright, of drowning, hopeless cases
eLc.
etc.,
this
simple act of '^pressing the electric touching the spirit reservoir, and compelling
while
And
button,"
i. e.,
would
spirit action, than
all
miracle the
the in
touch,
*
the
spirit that
the
Neither
matter.
is there
by
the is
another
back not
confound
increased
of
case
healing or
God's
up'*
"miracles
"Mental
of
by the while
Laws
"healer"
the
is
weakened
action
power touch. And
and
"mix
Healing,"
natural
healing,
disease
"miracle" any the of human act or
in
human
heal
doctors,'* still there
increased
in every of the
"Magnetic by whatever
of
life and
save
healing where, by spirit,in a diseased
spirit, which of
to
more
any human
the
is restored
do
'wisdom
of
case
one
of
the
no
in
part, human
sympathetic it
is
Healing
true are
must (?),still we of healing" with man's or healing,
Healing," it may be ignorantly called. name ''Mirades of the healing" only take place through immediate and action of the Holy Spirit. presence fied sanctiWhen is healed saved a instantly or or p)erson soul that (by whomsoever or by whatsoever means is brought to the healing, saving Light), that Light is the of the Holy Ghost, and healing or saving is a miracle must to the God, and glory of God; everlastingly stand for
as
"tongues
are
for
a
sign,
not
to
them
that
believe,
56
god's
but
them
to
"miracles
[as
that
teach]
some
committed
sins," have
we
years
for
healings
Christian,we
and
with
system
book
of
belong
"as
Christians"
have
the
in
in
us
the
healing
forty
manner"
and
as
fear
and
of
physician
a
love
of God
God's
Spirit, Healing" we give in this by that ''Spirit
life,and savage revelations made to us
civilized
"have
than
"all
diseases,"
of
only
and
more
studied
and
manner
For
(?).
so
even
"them
for
not
churches"
the
to
14:22),
analyzed conscious of help and direction "Faith of or Magnetic, Mental,
the
to
(1 Cor.
all, and
for
are
who
"all
healing
not'*
witnessed
and
every known
believe
healing"
of
of
laws
or
of Truth." while
And
without
touch
and
helpless the
these
commands
hand"
hand,
of
"arise
to
or
and the
human
and
ing" heal-
of
''commanded" of Jesus,"
name
seen
"exorcised"
Jesus;
of
name
same
**stretch
have
have
and
the
to
and
walk,"
by the
bodies
''miracles
manj' have
instantly obeyed,
from
still tlie
witnessed
paralytics,**in
forth
devils
have
we
ever to-day, by whatLaws of **name" man by God's give, are healed may do not and of healing natural, spiritual laws Healing belong to miraculous healing. deaf And nine-tenths of all healings of tumors, ears, blind touch. healed the etc., physical are by eyes,
large majority
all
of
healed
cases
"
No in in
"
wonder
"faith the
touching a
ing
score
those
to
To
who
make
healthy
that
honest which
case
of San but
who
Oakland, In
this
cured, to
Law
touch of
strength, and
strong,
a
/ear
is
body soul
to can
and
eyes
cases
the
spirit, the
no
blind
of these
who
healers,"
deaf
thev
them
as
life
weak
doubt
or
not
see
for
come
one
heal-
touched. the
(by which
transmitted
diseased
or
do
Jesus
Touch are
Christ
follow
to
ears,
when
Physical the
a
refuse
from
body)
misunderstand,
so
we
a
clear
give
tors" of the **best docgiven up by a dozen Francisco nearly a quarter of a century since, living in "good health" to-day in the city of was
California.
the only was mental force also, nearly "gone longer talk, and no obliged was case
not
physical force, but out to
of
He
him."
re-learn
the
the
could
alphabet.
CHAPTER
IX.
HEALINGS."
"ADVERTISING
does
not
i\\Q
casting
out
of
"But and enemies If
had
one
no
of
Christ^s
of
been "fallen
and
which
destroy
declare
that
And *'
if
we
after
they
unbelievers
These their
a
(Mark
He
deal,
for
by
of
thee."
And
Mark
them
they
published
not
to
it."
of
no
be
great 7:36
tell,
so
''broken"
r^ed
"the
Word
of
God"
because
faultfinders
(?) in
the
His
vineyard.
Scriptures
man" said
the
to
Lord
"But more,
but from
him,
home the
declares.
8:4),
to
"Go
things
unto
prejudice,
(Matt.
out,
and
publish,
or
(in vanity,
much
not
or
Jesus cast
Christ
receive
these
'*wrest
ful faith-
they
**works"
were
how
the
could
and
"advertise"
where
them
falsely
testify for Christ
tell
devils
charged
Truth
quoting
thou
and
healing
as
own
also
poisons,
and
apostles
with
to
their
for
5:19)
tell
(58)
of
testify to,
to
"See
legion
enemies
never
destruction,"
and
friends
who
judges"
ignorance),
whom
(?)
or
**unjust
forgetting
and
nothing
Christ
own
disciples
confronted
without
deadly
God
of
of
whole
past.
are
Rock
the
heal
to
have
not
morality,
according
men.
have
for
this
of
nothing
have
either
the
"miracles
for
of
Word
sure
the
being
Christians
Like
of
to
words
the
against
the
powder,"
to
truth,
done
{?)
brought
"ground
and
not
and
consider.
would
means"
miracles
of
healing,
be
to-day the
had
advertising"
concerning
or
days
the
the
cry
"
power
health
the
(?)
to-day;
healing" Christ's
both
and
there
God,
"appointed
Satan's
Stop
advertised*'
of
healing
advertising^'^
"
denies
church"
man's
*'
"faith
in
like
of
cases
Healing.
of
Word
the
believer
a
Gospel
published
in
healing"
look
devils,
these
of
publishing
thy hath
the
more a
great
FOR
The God's
the
and
with
can
these before
casting
and
unbelief; "Belief
read
the
devils
(in the
no
the
of
soul,
Truth,"
Word Acts
of
God.
the
of of
Apostles healing"
Jesus), which
of
name
grace
and
of
Revealed
a
the
from
taken
is not
following ''miracles
the
of
out
of opposers **miracles healof ing"
world,
and the
these the
of
God
of
reading
the
to
doctrine of any **weak brethren"
oppose Let
wisdom
the
hide
to
59
BODY.
which
by
Spirit seek from being published Spirit, but a canker-worm
filled
AND
SOUL
humility
of
vanity Word
SPIRIT,
of personal experiences of the authors of Healing. this Book The subjoined "healings" are selected as being the most and best the instructive, demonstrating as Spiritual, of Healing Mental, and Physical Laws through Physical, Intellectual, and Spiritual touch. All of these Laws cured by following God's cases were the use of poisonous drugs or mediof Healing, without cines are
of
Consumption
2.
Ulceration
entire 3.
(with hemorrhages of
sore
nearly blind, 4. Consumption of so
perfectly 5.
and
6.
Heart
7.
scrofulous
lungs). sores covering
with
"granulated lids," both just ready to burst open." five years' standing; seventy-four
of
had
weak,
to
threaten
to
be
carried;
immediate
bronchial
strangulation;
healed.
mental
this
with
eyes,
*'one
age; very filled as
Nervous
cured
eye,
of
body.
Scrofulous
years tubes
whatever.
nature
or
1.
the
eyes
name
any
prostration;
physical
of twelve
Paralysis;
unable
"Laying years to
lost
ready
powers;
disease. case
had
on
control
for of
of agony dress or
the
feed
both
asylum.
hands," fear
of
and
once
only, pain.
herself; brain
attendant to (on the way required a constant the Stockton Asylum). in the last stages shadow," 8. Consumption; **a mere this of the disease. And man notwithstanding young and two brothers lost a father by hereditary consumption, baseball in his of the he became runners champion one city, after healing.
affected
;
god's
60
glued,
to
conditions crowded
it and
between
muscles
of
all
pain
were
removed,
and
limb
into
man,"
in
which
done
in
the
such
with
This
tracted con-
spirit
muscles
of
confined
up the **muscular of the doctors has
wisdom
or
In
"the
the
forth
drew
be
not
filling the
and
by breaking
case.
for
withered."
shoulder
once
drug
a
hands"
and
at
we
years;
could
cataleptic conditions
and
no
hand
one's
body;**arm
of
arm
freedom
perfect
adhesion," ever
the
by '^laying on
minutes,
five
that
muscles)
the
of
form," for four
if clung immovable, as closely drawn (by cataleptic
right arm side, being so
the
healing
had
the
months
ten
of
in its worst
**Rheuraatism
9.
laws
action
accompanied
was
muscles "snappings and crackings" of the bound distinctly heard by all present though causing no And such the healing force of the was pain whatever. after the dried-together muscles spirit, that glued and natural free receive to set lubricating were again the all fluids could hear of the fluids, we excess **slushing loud
by
"
"
forth,"
and
back
Double
10.
instead
of
This
medical
books
and and hands eyes in their diagnoses and
own
eminent
physical
the
on
it. illustrates
case
"most
our
their
by
described
man
(hernia).
relying
of
fatal mistakes and
healed
thousands
of
guided
who, tlieir
the
rupture
"malpractice"
with
as
the
physicians" toms," "Symp-
on
examinations
common
make
sense,
"guessings"
at disease
ailments.
physical
been treated by the three-year-old boy had who eminent" "most physician of all California; the one of the "Medical not only stood at the head Society of the been also had who of California," but sent State to Europe and He Medicine had American to represent Surgery. little
This
attended
world
of
the
mother
sin
and
calls" the We
found
to
up
the of
until the
science the
babe
the
had
(?), and time
ushered
was
made
regular "professional ine brought to exam-
were
we
this
into
sufferer.
curvature
to
when
the
the
ceiling.
little fellow
spine,
eyes We
and told
in
which face the
a
sad
had were
plight, with the
drawn turned
mother
cervical
head
ward back-
straight upward
(who
had
called
us
FOR
in
for "fear
secret
but
could
she
and
that
agreed and But
his
when
stood
him
could
see
of
that
mean?"
the
side
that
her
"council
pain
disease.
The
"Bladder will
double
of
the
this
the
books
to
your read
disease,"
or
above
(The
the
A
most
measles
of
the
with
"only he treating him
a
does
What
is that?
this
at
floor
mother,
bladder
has
bladder
for
Lifting
little
poor
had
and
caused,
eye
of
and
by body
mother
the
doubt,
no
him
victim's
irritation"
"nervous
child
the
"undress
disease.'"
the
wrote
discovered
him
to
that
through
the
be
"the
ture curva-
illustration the
double
Thus
diflference
ignorance; with body to see your touch, or the examining by the
rupture, is
or
which
tumors,
introduced,
miracle" without
of
touch
suggest
or
medical
to
show
see
power between
eyes and medical **bladder dementia.
a
"miracle
"professional error" examinaor physical tion.)
of in
suppressed measles, with terrible dreams, gritting of teeth, etc; a marvelous several weeks for of after healing, the case; the entire body (as they re-appeared and covered peculiar
5
condition
(?)
not
may
over we
the
of
diseased
symptoms
ture rup-
suflFering from
permanently."
over
of
case
us
of
healing," but "a diagnosing disease 11.
nothing
Just
case.
to
"What
*bladder
cured ago, was remarkable of this
knowledge the examining with
suddenly
been
mother
the
of
feel
child's
mother
the **knew
physicians"
and
spine
even
"non-professional"
pain
you
years results
and
neck.
case
which
brother,
the
which
rupture
long-continued
his
repeated,
we
the
to
his
to
months/'
shake
even
boy's
her
has
this
one
city had large head
the
in
was;
doctor
her
that
neck
the
said:
we
doctor
about
see
revealed
four
fell
disease?"
arms,
Of
fellow ; and
trouble
the
physicians was owing
of
in
for thirteen
disease
a
of
know"
to
what
neck.
nothing," replied
"Oh,
the
the
unclothed
little
scream
we
of
bv
the
time
best
61
BODY.
declared
it, and
condition
we
they ought
as
the
of
muscles
weak
doctor")
believe
not
council
a
her
of
AND
SOUL
SPIRIT,
of
62
god's
before
did
"driven
being
remained
the
on
laws
in"
surface
healing
of
four
previously) and years skin until thrown off by
the
of
spirit in man." 12. Lung disease, **a persistent and dangerous cough," healed "laying on of hands," and "the assurance by once Felt the presence of the Spirit" that **it is done." of God's Spirit for days after. We 13. laid Epileptic fits, of two years' standing. i. 6., **the
nature,
hands
this
upon had
victim
condition mind
in
sights
a
the
first
you
[healing power]
the
and
man,
the
through
entire
my
worldly
"spirit in
man"
declared
person felt the
I
me
natural
all
to
the
say,
the
cataleptic
and
afflicted
touched
thrill
the
to
unconsciousness to
when
paroxysm,
marble
as
still,strange
spirit in
"when
that
the
epileptic
rigid
of absolute
state
sounds;
or
"felt"
muscle
every
in
the
from
passed
"
while
case
magic and
body,
fire I
was
healed." Methodist
A
14.
from
brought
of
powers
laying on "Every groaned
"nervous preacher, an asylum; fearful magnetism," yet persuaded
prostration."
insane
of hands in
base
over
the
and
forehead,
unbelieving"
the
of the
name
to
of the for
a
exclaimed,
the
when of
curse
"Wonderful!
the
left hand
only,
moment
(through
the
and
"just try"
full
my
brain
ical diabolthe
Lord.
body is pressed eloquent preacher, as we laid
nerve
the
in
of "the
Wonderful!
agony,"
right
over
"the
false
of
the
fearful
teaching)
hand eyes and denly sud-
Wonderful!
Healed. pain has all gone." 15. Baptist preacher, "great revivalist;" nervous tration; prosunable numbness of longer to obtain sleep; limbs beginning of palsy. Restored. with 16. Scrofulous driven tumor, erysipelas, which was out of the by the spirit in man, body through every ticle parof the skin, even to the toe and finger nails, instead of being driven the into body by drug applications, to the result of the scrofulous destroy the life. (This tumor was the
"
inheritance either
"never was
cast
out
in
laughed and
the
the or
blood
of
the
cried," until
immense
tumor
child, which the
had
blood
poison A disappeared. "
FOR
illustration
perfect drive
Another
"spirit in
the erysipelas, where again parts again and fatal often remedy), and
man"
to
diseased and
(the standard
had
doctors
of
case
the
painted
of the
power
63
BODY.
disease.)
out
17.
the
of
AND
SOUL
SPIRIT,
with
iodine
again patient
and
the in the disease," until "driven again had was given up to die. By stopping all medicines, and by laying on of hands, is a poison of the the erysipelas, which blood, was soon driven which alone all the drive out out by can spirit, kinds of poison from the blood and body of man. Every outward which drives back erysipelas, or any application other form of skin disease, "falsely so-called" (for all skin health blood diseases diseases), imperils the future are or wisdom" of "medical life of the victim (?). And this killing of the erysipelas by killing the skin so with the disease to cure iodine, only appears compelling the dead, iodine-covered the fiery to leave parts, to enemy another in of the portion skin, to again be re-appear killed by this deceptive remedy (?), to appear again (if life suflBcient),or to be retained is still spirit force there or "
in
blood
the
medical
suflferer from
O
Remember, themselves
in skins
the
use
escape And
skin.
the
for
instance,
"drawn
out
of
upon
the
whole
out
fatal
error
more
has
treated
for
"scotches" from
body,
the
the
manifest
more
than
the
through
in
other
and
vent pre-
intelligence the
of
pores
manifested
loathsome
keeps back skin by its own
blood
that
in
the
(?). Take ("blue mercury has distorted and crippled, victims than all other drug the bones and literallyeaten up
which
and
tradition.
back"
which
is
the
skin-destroying,
any "dam
is to
drive
to
shape"
that
poisons,
remedies"
mass"),
poisons combined, flesh of thousands Mercury only loathsome poison
do
can
same
all "internal
of
All
blood
no
(killed) skin
leather.
of
relieves
idolatry of and people!
can
eczema,
tanned
spirit is trying
of the
doctors
or
application"
"outward
the
blind
iodine or
and
ignorance
ye
death
until
organs
measles,
erysipelas, or tanned
vital
and
"
and
bones
diseases. and
hides
the
virulent
attack
of
which
man,
64
god's
the
compels far
deadly
more
itself
disease O
whole
millions
the
head"
"sheet-anchor" It
the
mouths
led as
medical
"the
her
of
and
of
mother
tooth
every
in that ago
the devil"
coming from double of the curvature Paralysis and Restored by **layingon years' standing. "The truth shall make free." saying, you devil
"A
19. have
called
been the
women,
had
a
reckless
her
made
decision
world."
declared
favor
he
would
A
the
and
Christian the
man,
when
she
Christian, his
shoot shot
we
men
And
of
the
which
Christian
a
in
of hands,"
from
mind.
to
one
"
the
of
"man
fellow"
^'reckless
lovers
to
cases
devils
first
comes
two
definite
the
all
"exorcise"
to
following
woman
young other
Of
out."
cast
of
spine,
18. many and
and
(?)
(by mercury) drugs ffty years
all
denounce
to
the
in
profession!"
destruction
the
fatlier
mother
own
my ^^
of
tooth every diabolical remedy
this
of
seeing
'lost
have
use
of
the
was
spirit to fight against this the original (of tlie doctor's) than of mercury! cripples and crimes
who
the
from
healing
the
of
force enemy the
O
of
laws
the
rival
first and
on
killed
rival they met, sight. But when murderer. From that the day the desperate, would-be her choice, became "obsessed" after married soon lady, who says) (as Spiritualistssay) and "possessed" (as God's Word of a devil, who personified the dead lover and had tortured until she her asylum, when by was ready for the insane of prayer enter her, and
faith"
"the
hour,
that she
had
and
been
returned driven
to
for which
confinement,
provide for her. 20. Consumption moment." expected any
command
her," she
into
more
no
the
and
her
"come
to was
"church
instead years, her husband
made
work,"
free from
of
going
had
felt
of
out
from which
into
private compelled
to
21.
Tumor
in ''last
twelve
of
revivalist
habit; a opium prescribed by her doctors instant by "the laying on 22.
Confined
to
the
bed
stages;" strangulation;
years' growth, until
(?).
with the
cursed
"death
hopeless opium,
by Miraculously healed
in
an
of hands." for
sixteen
months;
given up
G6
god's
laws
Christ'*
of Jesus
name
of the
raise
with
"In
the
and
paralysis
for fifteen months;
arm
command,
arm.
your
shoulder,
of
Displacement
37.
healing
touch, by the
instantlj^ without
healed
of
helplessness instantly,
cured
was
hands laid on the eyes for blindness, with having of the displaced hope or expectation of being healed no "all the him told ttiat could shoulder, as surgeons" had be done, for he was "crippled for life." never Catarrhal 38. congestion, extending to the brain; compelled business. Cured to close by twice "laying on up while
of hands." Abscess
39.
of
up
be
dying; was of hands," by "laying on the following day to testify to
healed blocks
"
miraculous
his
to
"
by five physicians; pronounced and miraculously instantly
liver; given
Dysentery
40.
from
escape
walked
^before
twelve
church"
"the
death.
by
healed
childhood;
from
and
"laying
once
of hands."
on
Deaf
41.
fever; healed
by "laying
of hands."
on
Helpless
42.
scarlet
from
forty years, in
bed
months,
ten
healed
"childbirth;"
from
of hands."
by a single "laying on healed 43. Consumption, with severe hemorrhages; by "laying on of hands." 44. Demon possession; exorcised by the "command," was
in
Jesus'
"come
him
of
out
and
enter
more
no
him."
into
following
(The within
a
45.
An
in
invalid
for
converted 5
James
:
with
cases,
months
few
instantly, See
to
name,
the
others,
Church
eight and
of
years, sanctified
were
by
the
"laying
on
(in of
anointing.
14, 16.
by "laying Deaf
Healed
bedridden.
mechanical appliances Dependent on hands." healed of by **laying on years; times three fourteen 47. Spinal disense years; the surgeon's table, a hopeless wreck; "wheeled
48.
healed
Christ.)
46.
healed
all
on
one
hands."
for
twelve
bound
to
about;"
of hands."
ear)
from
a
baby;
healed
by
once
FOR
49.
Seventy-three
"smothering"
and
Internal
twelve
for
of
years by the
67
BODY.
AND
iiealed
age;
preaching
of heart
Word
the
of
disease
only,
touch.
without 50.
SOUL
SPIRIT,
broken
injury (from
months;
cured
in
ribs); constant pain moments by "laying
few
a
of hands."
on
51.
disease
Spinal
from
infancy; cured
by "laying
on
of hands." Granulated
52.
had
Remarkable
case,
stood
her
not
"the
upon of faith"
prayer
Invalid
54
infancy, healed
from
ing ''lay-
by
of hands."
on
63.
eyelids
pain; night
and
bedridden feet **
with
for
eighteen anointing."
room
;
hopeless;
healed
ear) from
infancy; healed
sweats;
healed
years;
dark
years; kept in
seven
disease;
spinal
constant
"laying
by
by
of
on
hands." 55.
Deaf
(in
one
touch.
without
fifteen Spinal disease years; the "anointing." instantly, by 56.
57. and
58. of
Catarrhal
caused
study
faith,
by
disease,
the
to
eyes
which remain
healed
pain;
constant
had
closed
half
closed; unfitted
by "laying on of reading; healed Bright's Disease; great sufferer; healed or
the
nostrils, for
hands."
by "laying
on
hands.*' 59.
sick
Chronic
healed
Healed
61.
Saved
from
mental
and
moral
62.
Seventeen
condition prayer
of
of of
long-standing
marvelous (Many spiritual disorders
belief, for the from
came
63.
the
Fifteen
**laying
on
the
days
of hands."
a
time;
grave
inflammation.
internal the
or
asylum,
insane
a
debility," hopeless instantly by the body; healed with sanctified "joy unspeakable." and of healing of mental cases of
not
are
world
"nervous
mentioned would
not
here, believe
testify of them.) dysentery; years' chronic dead"
at
wreck.
years mind and
faith, and
bed
of hands."
by **laying on
60.
in
headache;
because
"though
yond beone
to
cured
by
once
68
GOD
Fearful
64.
HEALING
OF
neuralgia, instantly healed. of
case
of agony;
years 65.
LAWS
S
Dying
of
Deep
ulcer
babyhood
from
"milk
from
consumption
; fourteen
leg;" perfectly
healed. 66.
and
Marvelous
"milk
from
tumor
leg;"
healed.
"the whole face healing, where filled with black until coal; swelled as was gunpowder," the could be all pain removed in a few not seen; eyes of powder left in minutes; perfectly healed, not a trace "the the skin. of what faith of God" (A perfect illustration the spirit in man, when dare do, through to trust can we Laws of Healing.) to God's told doctors the that 68. Crushed he ankle; by 67.
would
be
not
able
stand
to
"miracle
A
instantly.
of
case
of
for
"painless childbirth," to "bring trusting the Lord laws
healed
months;
healing."
69. 70, 71, 72, 73, 74. 75, and of
cases
six
as
more,
many
under
instructions
our
forth"
all
were
according
to
for
his
own
of birth.
"bent for double Hospital case; Instantly healed; spirit of infirmity." and shouting praises to God. 77. Thirty years paralysis of the lower 76.
four
years forth
went
bowel
;
by
a
ing danc-
perfectly
healed. Chronic
78.
79.
80.
bone" inches flesh
of the
of
nose;
Marvelous in
dead"
healed
by
of the returned
breast,
Immense
of
case
several
"scald-head,"
86.
"killed
;
healed.
by
touch
touch
of
of the
gers, fin-
hand
and
of faith."
places
surface as
a
82. 83, 84, 85, and the
lip
disease
with
apoplexy,
from
prayer.
Cancer
"prayer 81.
return
a
of the
Tumor with
of
of
fear
constant
brain
congestion
uterus, and
had
little child's. many
other
etc.,
"indolent
internal
"eaten
destroyed many flesh, perfectly healed
and
of the
all
had
which
cancer
sorts
of
tumor
Praise
His
cases,
were
"incurable
of
the
the
square and the
name.
of
cancers
ulcers," "
to
fever-sores,
(?)
womb,
skin
eases. dis-
estimated
FOR
by her
SPIRIT,
physicians
to
circulation
venous
weigh almost
paralyzed; relieved by perfectly healed. soon twenty
AND
SOUL
twenty
-five
twenty
or
stopped; first **laying Has
69
BODY.
pounds ; nearly
limbs
lower
well
remained
now
and
hands,"
of
on
for
years.
followed by catalepsy years; after each attack by one "prayer of faith," ; perfectly cured and "laying on of hands" eight years since; well to-day. 88. Seven ulcers, were indolent, **dried-up,"scrofulous 87.
"Epileptic
fits'* for
"
and
re-opened "laying on 89.
"set
of hands,"
Deformed
running"
to
thumb,"doubled
straightened
and
food
kind;
could
more
than
a
up"
minutes,
few
astonishment
the
to
in
of
by
all.
birth; instantly
from
Her by touch. pastor condemned her for not healing herselfby her own faith. the 90. Typhoid rattle in "death throat," fever; healed. instantly of daily agony alkali 91. Twenty from ing; poisonyears "stomach all raw;" could rible only digest food with tersuffering; healed instantly by "laying on of hands." 92. "Doctor's hundred two nine strychdisease"; had taken (dog poison) pills,until he could no longer eat solid of
stand
any
for
up
healed
beefsteak
neither
lie
down,
minutes
few
a
sit
at
a
down,
time.
or
Ate
the suffering pain after and first "laying on of hands," "slept like a child." of blood; "mere 93. Issue skeleton;" helpless in bed; death looked for any moment; "miraculously healed" was God's spirit filling the soul and body of both the healed Presence. and the instrument of healing with the Divine Total blindness both 94 of for eight months; eyes healed moment's excruciating pain; ing "layperfectly in one of
heartily
without
"
of hands."
on
95.
as
bear on
the
soon
as
96. touch
both
covered eyes the least light
months; not
of
Blindness
we
entered
command
power
the
blindness" to
sound;
or
street; felt the
"Total and
kept in eyes; black with cotton of
dark
room
batting;
for could
from kept teams ing passwithout touch, healing,
room.
of "look
one
eye; and up
healed see."
instantly by
god's
70
98.
Consumption;
99.
Bedridden
from
by
arose
Scald-head""
healed
the
the
tion; prostra-
nervous
"one
by
touch.
solid
blotch'*
healed
by touch. 101. condition;" "hopeless Dysentery; freed and from daughter of a doctor; healed
"
nounced pro-
faith."
bed, healed head
whole
eyelids;
"by
and
dyspepsia from
and
eyes touch.
last stages;
immediately **
healing
of
healed
incurable;
100.
of
inflammation
Chronic
97.
laws
she
that I
when
God's
(What
a
mama,
moved
or
;
girl;
pain
denly sud-
I feel
testimony
so
better
from
a
than
child
to
of
healing.) rheumatism; Inflammatory
way
102.
weeks
well"
am
*'0
exclaimed,
young
touched,
to
even
immediately
patient
had
change underclothing,
not
been
for three
healed.
patient sitting for weeks with both feet in a chair ^healed at night and day and free from Patient all pain. walked, once. arose 104. Another of inflammatory in the rheumatism, case of seeing the marvelous healing of which phenomenon disease the the "fiery red" of the follow healing hands the the (without body) from touching hips to the toes, witnessed by all present. was 105. Wonderful jected subwas healing, in which surgery to the case higher law of faith and spirit. The caused immense tumor an was by hip disease. Surgeons all agreed into such that death to open certain, but was would death. immense body of matter surely hasten an and of spiritto control heal, we By faith in God's power three the tumor and took away opened pints of odorless off^,"and healing took place rapidly pus, the first "drawing blood and nad been for the completely; patient's the before weeks for purified by "laying on of hands," to the (as the harmless, operation of opening down pus who odorle"s all ye of it proved). nature Remember, lost ear-drums, and "set" believe (?),that God will restore 103.
Rheumatic
gout,
with "
"drive
bones,
and
through
the
"blind
His
fixed laws),
broken
own
faith" that
"
away" quarts of liquid pus, (?) of ignorance (contrary to and arU "bone-setting" is an
SPIRIT,
FOR
surgery of God's
needless
sciencey although
a
71
BODY.
AND
SOUL
and
cutting
maiming Sin.
and temple ''malpractice," "quackery," by the doctors; palsy,'*incurable "Spasmodic healed by "laying on of hands** and "the prayer
106.
is
perfectly of
faith." '*Demon
107.
"devil
or
"exorcise," Jesus*
of
Jesus
the
"exorcised" the
a
two
in
from
But
the
instantly opened "possessed of a devil" body, by the simple the
out
come
above
'*God's
Laws
of
108.
Both
hands
can
heal
And
she
hall "A In
"
a
the you.
and
and
"a
"
no
black
of
name
from
restored
by
Jesus In
the
stoppage
the
power
but
"
God
In
the
this
of the
before
spoke
and
we
of
name
her
of
Jesus, arise
feet, and
spiritual
case
laws
lips
our
said
"
"but and
ran
intellectual
knowledge
of
ing noth-
another
utter
through
across
and God
walk." the
Healing. of healing, God's ical, physall intelligently were
of God's
wonderful
do
can
could
faith," and
of
Science
world), "We
Laws
of
scientificallycombined. The of true, believing, spiritual,trustful prayer the
and
her."
into
more
the
soul
moment, the
were
out, and
paralyzed; emaciated, said to her pitiful sight." We
of
"assurance
following
intellectual
hands
feet
leaped instantly to of healing." "miracle
miracle" the
enter
both
and
sister" for you, my of word, the wisdom
with
the them.
open
the
arms,
"In
until
that
Healing."
helpless and hopeless wisdom medical (in our
heart
not
that
from
turned
arms
of
name
was
spirit" driven
command:
circulation
blood's
the
of
healed
the
helpless cataleptic contraction
the
"evil
the
of her, and the
case
of
of
ers, preach-
hands
the
could
complete
muscles
and
Christ
closed
so
power in
to
being ^'possession"caught
soul, another
of
the
first demon
the
committee
condition
of all
While
poor and
one
of
men
this
in
hour.
victim,
strongest
called
been
have
gave the
same
second
sion," of "obses-
cases
stronger proof of the occurred than following, which committee of lawyers, doctors, and "evil spirits" were cast out by the
none
name
presence when
the
possession." Among possessed," which we
the
laws
of "the
faith, soirit
72
god's
in
physical subjection of the patient's the of which to the "inspiration Almighty/' "giveth and all wisdom," were faithfully employed fearlessly
body them where
medical
no
destroy
of his
hands
control
solid laws
the
a
ankle
in
man,
life
and
manner
world"
to
as
both
with
us
both
of his
joints.
ing Know-
we
able
were
the
to
frozen
parts the
prevent
to
struction de-
to
law
need
a
be
All in
ball the
reaction
doctors
reaction
"
of frost
or
"thought
ever
"chill"
"the
fever."
cold
will
of
the
understood. is
there
universal
a
the
greater
solid
a
human
knowledge
the
of
surface,
force by
the
greater
be
of
And
in
also
the
thought")
a
the
sick
person
proportion degree of
to
that
know
will
be
the
degree in
reaction
the
the
body.
human
if
And
earthen
cold
against
the
to
that
the
of
were
that
wisdom
"rebound."
or
(who
proportion
as
lost, if the
reaction,"
is thrown
of "the
limbs
frozen
know
persons
and
of "action
will
be
never
intelligent
which
the
save
portrayed herein, as "spirit,"
of
All
even
a
"
helplessness
the
proves
body, which laws
of flesh
atom
one
and
man,"
this
shivers the
But
dishes the
venous on.
of the and
cold, dead
to
reaction
glass, pieces. glass
matter,
heat
of
against
in
yet observed governed by this
pieces"
the
or
eyes of the believed or
"curious"
of which
suddenly,
heat
apply
we
never
the
blood
to
of Lake
in "medical thing unknown science" This "miracle" (?) "since the world began." Laws God's of Healing strates perfectly illustrates and demonlife force or and the power of the "spirit mystery
in
in
interfere
Indians
wrists, and
the
life"
spiritof
gentle
the
the
above
of tne
and
could
brought
was
just above
from
return
of
of
solid
of the
gradual
so
life among
carrier
frozen
feet frozen
"the
mail
lost
unbelief
life.
for
missionary
our
Superior,a
theological
or
maim
or
During
in
healing
of
the
and
man,"
to
laws
that
inviolable,
same
will
doctors
bring
delicate arterial
sure
and
"the
circulation
of
man"
law, the
is lation vio-
and
"shivering capillaries by which
destruction
network
spirit in
universal
have
surgeons
is connected
and
ried car-
74
god's
profession (?) do back
demonstrate, "laws
of
the
and
blood
the
of the
human
for
carries "the
what
only
we
of
who all
in
creates
wonder
knows
him of
spirit
atom every and disease
No
to
laws
on
healing
dared
has
medical
other
man:"
blood,
wizard,"
and
which
spirit circulates
builds
up
Edison,
electricity is ; we only the "human know what
and
the down
tears
all
all parts, heals
of
function
the
discoveries,
body, repairs every
discover
to
**God's
exclaims:
temple"? "No
what
know
man
it
does;"
electricity"(?) "
the
call it it is. know what So not we spirit does, but can is love." *'God from God, and Iqve; for it comes The laws heat, cold, Friction, pressure, of spirit touch. will and touch physical touch, mental spiritual touch excite action friction excites in the as spirit force, even And that can electricityin **dead matter." spirit action be directed disease to heal to or produce disease, to save life or to destroy life; to serve God the devil, to serve or to obey." we "yield ourselves as We the spirit action in the power of heat to change see hot mud baths; healing rheumatism, etc., by hot water or "
and
the
rheumatism" is or
of
power
by
the
reaction
other in
cases
accidentally plunged
cure"
Again, spirits are
cold, to
extreme,
into
where
"cure
afflicted
the
ice-cold
also
water
"
a
son per-
"kill
remedy. find
we
helpless,
whose persons of "a house on
bedridden
quickened by fear, in cases that from fire," etc., that they spring to their feet healed All hour. of these phenomena are governed by God's know of of these laws the spirit action; and more we laws the better for healing the be used of Qod we can faith" bodies "Blind and (?) saving the souls of men. and and "naked faith" for superstition (?) are only names ignorance, and are never found in God^s Word. in this "miracles The of healing" recorded book, were in done in a corner," but many of them "not wrought were and verified the of large public audiences, by presence so
committees
of
doctors
and
ministers
verified
by personal
of
all
schools
and
of the
high-
faiths. Others
were
witnesses
SOUL
SPIRIT,
FOR
AND
where standing in the communities in case 24, that instance, place. For for thirty years, the displaced shoulder
the
est
that
declared of
in
place,
to
Jewish
rabbi,
and
with
other
together by him.
Like
failed
to
"had
suffered
a
catalepsy half
ence pres-
verified
doctors
cases,
hope
'*the
displaced
muscles
of
of
on
a
drawn
and
had
surgeons subject, and
she But
physicians."
many
laying
and
as
brought to us by a publicly by him, healings witnessed
the
to
the
of
"stiff
around
way
other
things
the
of
returned of
case
cases
by
shoulder
was
healing
further
moments,
all
the
in
straightened
was
turned
many
But,
the
remarkable
even
of
surgeons consulted and
Another
arm
her
the
offer
few
restored, and
hand
with
requested the privilege healings," the paralysis was
"these
the
took
best
done."
perfectlyimmovable,
side,
the
to
the
with
board,"
that
were
of
healings paralysis,
previously
complete
so
arm,
be
minutes.
few
a
with
shoulder, entire
had
witnessing the speech
removed,
etc.,
could
"nothing
editor, who
an
of
in
Sacramento,
Francisco,
San
75
BODY.
of
hands,"
from
the
the
arm
perfectly restored.
was
In
all
of
this
work
of
the
will
they
been
healed
that
of those
be
referred
God
of "For
answers.
with
God."
Question. trees
if he
remedies
for
trust
they
of God's
Laws
of
P.
O.
AND
did
not
disease?
594,
of
may
Healing to
for
man.
of
more
inquiry who
are
most
asks, and
the
dressed, ad-
Cal,
Oakland,
witnesses
cases
our
ciently suffi-
have
similar
to
ANSWERS.
world"
the
wisdom
did
Why
Box
living
this
1 Cor.
letters
send
by faith, and whose inquiries. making
wisdom
into
come
that
to
QUESTIONS
"The
have
ings heal-
many
of efvery disease known their hearts," to know
Spirit, may Healing,"
"Faith and
God,
which
we
power
desire, "in
who
Those
in
faith
by
cure,
the
cases
diseases
experiences,
illustrate the
of
classes
personal
own
above
of the
selection
the
of
this
wisdom
world
of
is foolishness
3:19. God
intend
poisonous
create
that
we
should
plants use
them
and as
76
god's
1.
Answer,
of
thing God
herb
did
for
not
any
smells
of
know,"
by And
when
vile
taste
and
smell,
and
deceive
the
(Gen.
says
seed;
to
it shall
you
And
(?)]." sin
But
this
of
be
He
for
he
face
the
fruit
drugs
the
whole
of
wisdom
herb,
every
and
earth,
poison
yielding cine medi-
or
Recreated
said
the
disguise body.
tree,
a
for
you to be
to
all the
all that God
spares
at
God's you
of
causes
worse,
the
[not
meat
it
expect
But
the
then
did
revolt
given
pronounced and
came,
or
only
made can
world.
I have
it
senses
poison
so
that
you
God-given
is upon is which
the
in
tree
every
must
"sugar-coat"
we
plant,
less
distress
be
(?) "before
"Behold,
which
is, so
it
"You
taste, and
1:29),
bearing seed,
better
the
tree,
much
pain and
more
the
wisdom
is the
This
the
remedy
better."
selection
and poisonous the traditions disease, although the vile the remedj'^ more
that
us
victim.
the
the
of
other
and
(?) for
taken),
the
and
whatever,
teach
first
life
single poisonous
a
testes, and
and
(when
us
the
create
men
in
senses
4, 5.
remedies
as
animals
the
ing vile-tastvile-smelling and ease? (?) for disman as remedy a
oil, strychnine,
filthy drugs of
:
purpose
castor
create
26
Prov.
with
man
all
guide
if every intended for
was
See 2.
create
poison,
from
food
God
taste, which
and
smell
did
Why
healing
of
laws
good.
3:17,
(Gen.
18): also,
Thorns, ground for thy sake. shall thee." And thistles it bring forth and to not only thistles and did thorns *'spring up," as the result of man's "evil tree" the sin, but **deadly nightshade." the every nauseating castor (oil)bean, and the "dog poison" strychnine *'Cursed
is the
.
.
.
"
tree, etc. and
"the
from
Q,
But
healing A, or
unbelieving Herein
good.
the
of
did
God
of
believe
you recommend
h()nest
not
them them
in
the
result
the
evil, but
children
the
use
of
The
sin. the
wise
darkness
of
ish foolchoose known
figs
as
a
remedy
for
the
boil? it? to
for
the
light."
Hezekiah's
Do
the
are
children
prescribing not
as up choose
sprang
"
Did
others,
boils
and
question.
you or
try figs for boils?
ever ever
hear
carbuncles? You
ask
it
of
the
No, because
doctors are you of your
FOR
unbelief. Hezekiah's
back
the
in
figs"
of Isa.
of
if you
seek
in
sun-dial
heal
to
days
of
and
Ahaz,
with
"lump
a
Kings
2
the
in
was
of
boils
of
miracle
the
'*sun-dial."
forget your
not
the
on
77
BODY.
lengthening
shadow
So
figs.
do
20:7;
38:21.
Q. Did
prescribe wine (alcoholic, drunkardsake? wine) for Timothy's stomach's Paul also not for them prescribe literal milk weak in the faith, and for strong (tough) meat
Did
A. that
Paul
not
making were
which
them
If
above
the
1 Tim.
but
(1
contrast
of
to
letter
he
milk
referred
to
Word,
weak
he
killeth, but
milk
or
the
Heb.
3:2;
and
meat
in
wine
in
spiritual "milk
of
also
literal
referred of
meat
strong
or
water
the
to
2:2), then
the
1 Cor.
literal
referred
if he
the
faith?
the to
then
Peter
spiritualwine "The
referred
quotations,
Word"
the
Paul
5:23;
in
strong
were
5:12-14.
in
the
AND
resulted
which and
healing
turning not
faith
The
SOUL
SPIRIT,
the
of
the
Word,
Word. alive."
spirit maketh
the
to
And
spirit,lias misled all men through wisdom its false interpretation by the of this world ever "the foretold Paul. since falling away" by The Ghost alone Holy interpret the Holy Scripcan tures believe tliat Paul spiritually,and any soul who can told to drink Timothy longer water no (an impossible if taken command literally),or to take **a little wine" soul has unfermented), that (literal wine, fermented or the for his of not Holy Ghost interpreter of the Word the
letter, without
the
God.
"Spiritual things "Have
Q. Why
why
Paul
when A.
In work
his
life to In
this
among of them
he
of Christ
supply one
the
of
your the
died; and 6
of
service
only
two
that
(2 Tim.
"nigh
Paul
lack
second,
believed?"
ye Miletum
unto
death"
both?
unto
gentile Christians,
at
sick
nigh
was
Spirit" only.
since
sick
them
Epaphroditus,
to
the
Ghost
Holy
with
present
was
regard
the
the
by
left Trophimus Epaphroditus was
was
4:20), and
to
received
ye
discerned
are
says,
death,
not
toward
cases
of
we
see,
overwork
"Because
for
regarding
me."
sickness that firsts "
zeal
referred neither without
78
god's
knowledge fault
caused
"
in
did
the
did
Christ, and
needed
I
Miletum,
who
Paul
sorrow" if
remember,
the
and
not
was
much-
a
"
had
we
been
there
Trophimus
faith
some
over power God for ing, heal-
upon that
have
the
any to
left
(as
case
praying
claim
have
"only
one
himself
to
sorrow
not
says, But
the
thirds that
humbly
have
would
recover."
shall
of
for those
Word
for the
in
arrogate
should
we
healing
and
other);
that
lesson
of
sickness
not
disease, except "lest
laws
at
sick;
in
he
case every faith" "prayer of
and
is
God
does not Spirit always; change His laws for soul, or spirit, or body to gratify man's but holds all alike beliefs,traditions, or vanity of mind, of His to the just penalties for violation laws, "measure
subject
to
for measure/' violated Epaphroditus penalty, notwithstanding And
violate
if any of use
the
the
And His
or
before
ing,
the
and
"this
prayer." God, and
In
Q. Were
establishing miracles past?
Christ's
believed
"Many miracles
for
a
not
sign "
doubt
to
did."
them
overthink-
or
health; or by fasting and Before humble
be
Doubt the
food, etc.,
of
recovery but out
cases,
secret
your
wisdom
own
of
power the
sick,
His
the name,
And
disciples,miracles
His
and
Jesus
He
which
His
in
humble
Perhaps
the
not
delay
justice in any case. of healing for the only purpose the days of not are divinity? and or
and
Word
the
"To
God
miracles
not
of
not
"healers,"
question
never
goeth
or
more
men.
God
ing place accord-
salt, tea, coffee, rich to
ingly. accordwith
failure
become
us
in all case, any doubt His Word. as
fault
overworking
as
barriers
kind
never
wisdom
of
use
When
before
wise
more
insuperable
perhaps
A.
by faith, let
healing
excessive
the
but
of
prayers. in
suffer
take
not
the
wisdom
and
they will they find
how
received and
temperance
man,"
ignorant sins, such
or
and
in
and
presence
healing does ignorance.
when
conceit
God,
sins
are
of
let all beware
to their
in
Paul's
law
"spirit
servants,
occurs
the
law
physical
a
that
testimony." when
throughout
John
they the
2 saw
:23: the
gospel
of
(like salvation) "were that believe believe, but to them
FOR
And
long
so
will
long sinners
may
and the
And
believe. of
AND
"them
are
that
miracles
of
to Jesus
healing
He
with "miracles cry, Away sin-cursed earth of the
of
fallen
healing"! give
of in
"the
into
and
men
themselves, faith
the
of
of
life?
Ghost
has
them
The
wisdom
returned
Holy healing" and casting out in the days of the apostles. "Jesus done and forever." yesterday to-day and yes, "miracles
shall
shall
it :
this
on
fall, it will
be
grind
would, God
do
says
the
same
devils
as
were
Christ,
the
to
'*And
same
whosoever
broken;
but
him
powder."
to
for
ever whomso-
on
Matt.
44. have
We
seen
many and **broken,"
healing death through Word
God's
Q. But the
shall
stone
will
saints" of
of
fall
power of the
that
the
to
believing un-
and
unbelief,
let
nor
delivered
once
of "the blind"
the
with
the
not
proofs
same
filled
do
time,
leaders
are
holiness
and
healing
"blind
the
enter
enter
the
miracles
required
not"
Paul's
and
to-day require
churches
neither
believe
"who
Christ's
in
when
God,"
of
for
their
is it not
**ground
some
unbelief
holiness
of
opponent
an
and
to
sectarian
this
gospel of powder," by of mockery
and
healing. to important
more
save
the
soul
than
body?
A.
How
tinueiJ
can
the
Can
body? of
earth?
on
was
so
Are
past."
'*be
never
than
now
not/'
believe
when
if those
of
21
79
BODY.
remedies, for our poisons But will worship them for our we "gods of health." which miracles of healing will be by them wrought
tne
us
days
less dear
Unbelief
there
as
the
SOUL
SPIRIT,
to
you soul We
sin?
save
the
soul
have
called
been
body, sinning against "the sin," unpardonable against Holy Ghost.
not
while
stop sinning
the
sin,
without
who
the
Holy
upon claimed
who
the in
"
concases
many have to
mitted com-
had
simply committed Ghost, but against the
tenipleof the members of some Nearly all of these sinners were wasted the had religious organization" who ^the "spirit in man" of life" sins; or by secret God's temple through abuse or defiling "
the
saving body
dox "ortho"breath
by of
forming de-
their
god's
80
bodies;
the
him
and
see
minds
bodies,
for
God
in
soul
the
thousands
cross
that Go
first were
whose
that
conditions
these
by coming confessing their sins defileth the temple of insane to the asylums,
thousands
without
of
"saved"
and
"he
and
such
healing
souls
destroy."
thousands are
save
the
will
of
their
of
foot
again to against their God,
had
who
and
laws
it
members
organizations; but by disobeying God's the for vices, ^through secret body and drug-poisoning, bibbing, tight lacing "
with
and,
will
their
of
and
is
healing
once
bodies
impossible to the And body. of religious laws of living winegluttony, "
became
insane;
then
compelled to will of others, because submit to the to they only wanted their souls have saved, while counting God's temple only "carnal body, an unclean thing." a Go the to public hospitals and private homes, and see thousand ten mad, delirious, dying to-day persons, souls from the whose of are reason kept or ance repentpower either from salvation restoration of the body or of the soul by drug poisons, deliberately given in the* name science of medical of the falsely (?) and the mock prayers Christian so-called (?) faith (?). and bodies souls Yes, ten thousand perishing to-day, homes and in our hospitals made driveling idiots or Baal of doctors and by the worship raving maniacs the majority of all religious proselytes, priests; and of our insane and still outside asylums hospitals, will no
own,
were
"
"
"
"
their
have
never
have
first
been
ignorance world, long so
*'souls
saved"
healed.
cleansed
and
and
teachings and body
false soul
will
their
until
So
**vile bodies"
long
control suffer
the
prejudice, religious as
disease
and
death.
Q. Why, say
A, of
Because,
the
and
do
"the
healing
of the
spirit,soul
minds to
that
saving
the
then,
of
ing" Healleading lights of Divine the body is only secondary to
soul?
through their ignorance and body, Satan steps in
makes
prejudice
them and
believe
power
it
of their
of the and
divine
laws
beguiles their is "charity to pander unbelieving brethren.
god's
82
And
what
How
does
it act
And,
for
except
universal
the the
of blood all.
be the
Oh,
the
the
perfectly than
this
and
fire
disease
and
have
Again,
your and you salt enemy
wherever
it
worms,
but
and
trates illus-
habit
more
in
this
to
Take
wash
**the
mustard,
out
immediate
prevent
(salt)cathartic,
saline
a
sufifer
one-fourth
(spirit) to
blood,
after-effects"
worse
oil; and
castor
or
of
preservative
often, of from
force
perpetual
you
irritabilitv.
nervous (burning up) and sprinkle "only a little salt" in will realize, through instant pain, what
unclean
as
intestines.
No
you
into
and
will for
prayer
put
a
it
body.
your
vital
of
salt,you
scavengers
blood
nerves
worms? when
worms
much
too
breed
kill
by taking it rob body your
if you
to
itself to both proves in contact them. with
kills
never
by using worms
of
power
and
salt
not
salt
Yes,
contrary,
comes
does
Q. But A,
victims
hand
cut
cruel
the
senna,
fever
more
vital
will
you
the
far
a
Nothing
poisoning
waste,
Proofs:
wound,
the
blood
of
lobelia,
from
will
fever
kill
nutriment
no
the
death.
and
emetic,
than
all
of
one-half
to
or
is
flesh, it requires the
dead
longer they flesh exactly as the only reason
salt (for it is
of
it,
of
habit
and
irritant,
excitant,
a
there
while
For,
salt
forced
the
the
and
is
victims
it would
ignorance
of
curse
not
almost
that
which
expensive.
more
the
and
it could
from
it; and
preserve used instead
be
that
the
out
tripe,
drug
preserves
is because
drive
grown-up
the
of
Salt
arsenic saltpetre and is not arsenic why better preservative) would quicker, and
the
by
more
habit.
the
continue
become
endured agony the salt habit,
of
and
more
the
of
"preserved*'
so
poisons, the whole body.
drug
spirit to
the
soon
childhood
from
use
of
power would
all other
tissues
living
poisoning,
all
upon who
destroy, like
and
volume at
flesh, preserves juices; and its nature
to
stomach
salt, every
Salt
meat? preserve driving out its natural
of
circulate
healing
of
is salt?
by killing and is to dry up vital juices
whole
laws
force
and
the open weakened
of faith
or
the
on
On
the
tion digesdoor
for
stomach
"laying
on
FOR
ROIL
SPIRIT,
83
BODY.
AND
i
hands"
of
then
do
to
permanently
fiend
opium
an
"cease
heal
can
alcohol
or
evil, and
salt
a
learn
fiend
more
any
until
they
will
well."
do
to
fiend
badly afiected by the when of reaction tremens suddenly compelled nervous oflF their when leave leave salt as to to ofi^ compelled alcohol. tell Sea that opium or captains will you from they are compelled to keep the "salt horse" away the reached after scurvy-dying sailors, even they have fresh too tasteless meat vegetables and are port, where the for salt-depraved salt-poisoned appetites of the We
have
victims,
the
break
to
"
shown
has
rather
death,
unto
they are powerless God help them.
Q. But
can
not
a
so
can
Yes, and
little salt
be
little alkali, eta
to
truth, and
do
It is the'"too
and
the false
choose
or
without little
a
would
struggle
habit
by
used
little dust,
a
than
the
*'the way, broken
been
habits,
unnatural
of
until
themselves.
acid,
habit
will
as
slaves
it,when
their
teaching,
A,
fiends
all
false
from
for
life;
like
who,
continue
salt
seen
for
danger?
smoke,
much"
that
been
freed
a
little
destroys. nature dangerous drug, salt, we how and not to be injured by its foolish, ignorant use. salted No food the bear by nine healthy appetite can as and No families cooks of every out ten. poisoned person with the salt habit, can judge of the. injury he is receiving a
have
And
from
shown
salt
much
too
of the
the
he
until
has
it.
from
,
Yes,
will
salt
of
have
fever
all
the
indolent
sores,
boils, erysipelas, eczema,
man
for
used
been
of catarrh,
cases
kill
will
and
worms,
We
also.
"worm") scores
kill
(the human healing ulcers,
tetter, salt-rheum, it
of
tinual con-
cancers
impossible salt poisoning until the effect to was a cure permanent the off from blood, by the absolute breaking kept from disease of the the of salt habit, i, e., stopping the use restored its to the salt entirely until palate was so and
natural
of skin
manner
taste
without "that
have
that a
lost
of the
even
diseases, where
eggs
and
particle of
salt.
savor.''
No
its
delicious
taste
of
meat
was
would
Try it, ye salt
taste
slaves
fiend
fruits, melons,
has
to any
cious deli-
salt, ception con-
vegetables,
84
god's
etc.
(for
often
of
nuts, and
thousands
laws
salt
the
smell,
of the
healing
of
has
also,
paralyzed the nerves it has paralyzed and
as
bodies
entire
of
and
men
of
taste,
palsied
women).
helpless, speechless babes, who of the not rest briny milk, can nor sleep because breasts the of salt-preserved, and from and briny blood and mothers wine-bibbing, beer-drinking nurses. or Oh,
tlje
have
Mothers, ale
drink and
suflFerings of
their prepare alcoholic narcotic
pity
make
you,
little
babes, your of for all sorts
nerves
in
and
doctors,
your
who
ye
for
habits
diabolic
all
Oh,
milk
poisoned
and
and
babes!
your
sensitive
to
for
on
mercy beer to
and
the
the
future,
religious
your
teachers! since
Never,
on^
been
taught, is the
medical
defile
and
alcoholic
and
Winslow's
Soothing
women
would
temple,
and
and
that
"body
half
the
after poison Syrup" (extract of opuim) of
their
babes
has
soothed
cigarette, and opium-smoking whisky, alcoholic mother's from the milk, briny
habits.
nurse's
breasts,
has
brain
fever
through
bowels"
the
from
other
sent
salt.
the
alcohol,
the
from
or
thousands
to
will
Mothers,
for
the And
gin-drinking quick death, off
"running
or
becility, im-
or
palates
nerves
by
"Mother
death
into
their
ruin
and
prepared
or
dared
destroy
birth.
thousands
has
have
complete
then
there
has
human
not
narcotic
and
thousands
or
the
that
hearts
that
birth,
before
their
God,"
of
temple
babes
in
believed,
or
deform
to
"falling away*' of the church, school or religious creed
the
will
think?
vou
of
believe?
you
instruction
Every is
drugs put
a
all
does of
sorts
healing A.
of
What!
the
against
God
not
deadly
the
is of
name
bless
drugs,
in
appointed to
answer
can
and
crime, His
and
God
devil
the
spiritual
a our
the
that
destroying
means
prayer
Christ of man, for
the
sick? bless
God
and against God poison, opium
claim
every
soul
and
body
disease
off
take
blasphemy Q, But
vice, and
moral
or
on
give
to
all or
of
a
curse?
his
alcoholic
laws.
This God
poison,
or
question has any
is
a
sin
never
blessed
other
poison,
FOR
SO
whether of
taken faithless
the
Individual of
the
(which
churches
never
healed
prayed **the Spirit),and
the
of
prayer
but
fallen
hav^e
man
have
Vine,"
is the
the
had And
schools
all
And
body.
one
"branches
prayer bodies
no
heal
to
the
for
of
faith"
have
been
creed, has
church, as a man-made will have, God with or ever power the "wisdom of this world," with
healed;
body,
or
(?).
medicine
as
of all creeds, if themselves
members
True
or
of
prayers means" of "appointed
for soul
destruction
of
accident
by
85
BODY.
AND
SOUL
its nature
chauge
to
as
SPIRIT,
ever
by
prayer. its medical
all of
would
and
if combined
still be
religious creeds, powerless to save one
in
faithless
sick child if all united poor faithless its recovery. This
one
of
prayer
unbelief
Garfield the
was
means"
of
this
of
healing"
church
of
man's
His
is
a
will
He
earnestly
so
who
creeds
branches
the
are
individual
souls
Vine,
the
"
Laws
asked
And be
a
Satan
for
above
Healing miracle
of
lying
wonder
of
is the
impossible
become
has
every
exact
impossiblefor as
And
He
by stooping which
heat,
him for or
sweet," though
for
such
doctors
to
in
its very
the
doctors
is the of
the
Great fallen
branches
the
of
branches," runs
faith
to
or
ever
its
origin
in
be the
divinity (?)
of
miracle
a
whom through of by the prayer
heal
can
question
another"
bitter, and
the
are
ye
for
alone
are
branches Vine
church,
own
Christ."
laws, that
the
sugar-coat
against Christ,
am
His
of
with
own
put "bitter
not
ever
Church
glory
His
the to
death
to
curse.
of medicine pray
to
never
"gift but only
the
God,
of
medical has
dent Presi-
by and theological given the "gifts Spirit" to any
poisoned
of
making,
bless, contrary nature
other
any
"share
not
can
and
God
while
all classes
by
the
of
world."
or
"Church
the
made
so
being probed
was
"appointed
"wisdom
for
prayer
together,
dishonor
of
but
church; Christ's and
only "I
body.
vidual indi-
only the the
life
in any asked
age.
"of
the
Every
against
God's
serpent of unbelief.
yet to be performed is to of healing. destruction, and never the
devil
opposite of God; and it would to do to do good as it is for God for him his nature to change as
heat
All
Physician.
to
become
cold.
be evil cold
as "
to
GOD^S
86
Q, But
if Satan
2 Thess.
with
LAWS
heal
not
can
2:9, 10, which
all power
deceivableness
disease
"After
says: signs and
and
HEALING
OF
in
that
the
not
Q. How Acts
A,
who
a
one
where
you children
loathsome
devil
or
disease God's his
to
his
of
him?
drove
to can
Q. But
the
devil?
had
put
and
are
that
seduces
and
receive
aoes
man."
when and
the
devil
The
though
turned
thistles
of the
out
of
Satan
go the
put
the
which
devil
The our
and and
sons
disease. 3
:
But
"So
24
drive
not
he the
out
sorely oppressed garden to toil among were
sin-cursed
the
"whom
woman
they
to
penalties
lust?
did
devil
either
"chum"
the
man's
person
son
your
contracted,
he
the
Or, if the
you?
friend"
upon
water
it follow
or
are
does
or
visit
the
devil
thorns
the
induces
of his seduction,
victims of the
go
the
can
out
14
13:13,
of
seduce only oeguile and sin and to **yieldthemselves'^ fix the penalty for sin. G^n.
children
daughters God only
they
devil
the
on
go
drowned
"bosom
son's
laws
holy
Rev.
See
that
does
diseases
your
upon
to
consequence,
induced
or
"because
oppressed
mean
induced
are
as
perish,"
were
that
not
to
them?
you
drowned
who
perish"?
It says "lying dren deceive, not the chil-
truth."
the
those
Does
upon
If
of
all
with
itself.
that
"them
love
about
10:38.
diseases
but
them
in
of Satan
working and
of
light,
receive
the
is meant
lying wonders,
unrighteousness A, This foolish question answers wonders," not healing of disease; of
what
earth.
hath
lo, these
bound,
of her? 13:16), what which and A, Satan had bound oppressed this woman, had "spirit of infirmity," by beguiling, seducing, and a ual blinding her, to violate God's laws of physical and spirit-
eighteen
life.
years" (Luke
And
not
straight, and
"made And bound
every and
soul
until
Jesus
laid
hands
on
her
she
was
glorified God." that
oppressed
has of
not
love
"the
the
devil
in
that
the
devil
of
truth"
the
spirit or
soul
is or
body. To and
believe
God's
Word
the
the
soul, beguile man through (?),the desires, as he tempted and
can
only tempt
intellect, the
beguiled
E\ ,
son rea-
gives
FOR
to
the
man
mind
own
obey"
For
fear
the
the
face of
law
the from
free
me
devil
penalties 2
is
to
God."
he
And
to
without
anything into
of
Satan
penalties,
come
instead
disease,
2:4.
called
do
to
power
devil
is
that
to
exalt
to
God's
remove
all
heal
is
Thess.
directly himself
can
sin,
for
God." could
disease
on
''yielding
the
case
called
the
put
can
permission,
of
fear
"For made
man's
any
devil's
God's
or
out,
hath
devil
"above
be the
in
consent,
in
devil
indeed
believe
the without
is
the
teachings,
in
cry
we
Jesus
God's
that
if
would
of
that
with
all
and
the
through
death."
that
or
away
"above
and
power,
sin,
i, 6.,do
false
Christ
believe
to
his
in
sin
of
But
all
Life
of
law
the
and
devil
the
over
Christ;
of
87
BODY.
AND
power
wisdom
devil
Spirit
of
conscious
and the
of
SOUL
SPIRIT,
"fear
bondage
the of
our
the
Lord."
"
But
Q,
have
you
things
of
Spirit" Every captivity and
through answered
the but
world,"
of
to
to
opinion
my
into
Spirit"
things
of
as
and
ignorance the
Word
1 from
was
unbelief, and
wisdom
"spiritual
for
world,
8:2.
God,
and or
is
wisdom
"the
the
Cor.
Christ," to
concerning
only.
about
God."
above
God;
this
know
captivity asked
of
the
of
opinion
any
Word
obedience
the
question
by
right
either
is
thought to
a
must
we
wisdom
brought
Every
by
about
"the
right
good
the
discerned
think
this
any and
things
are
We
has
man
spiritual-
as
yours?
to
No
A.
I
haven't
of
things
suggested and of
sin.
of
by
Satan
question
every
God.
devil,
the
obedience
the
into
"brought from
the
Rom.
6;
16.
EPIGRAMMATICAL
STUDIES.
LESSON
THE
LAW
thought
integral
of
the
joy
or
CURE
mind,
has
accepted become
swaying
health
sorrow,
and
hour
present
DISEASE.
OF
received
have
conscious
your
evil,
or
THE
you
unto
j)art
good
AND
which
childhood
from
for
CAUSATION
OF
Every
I.
an
life
your life
disease,
or
or
death. This and
accumulated
the
of
source
knowledge
is
present
state
your
present
bodily
of
state
mind,
individual
your
and
thouglit,
of
harmony
sequently, con-
inharmony
or
,
because
the
higher
the
to
mind in
physical
(the part,
life's
history
time
we
in "
which
of
thought, lost
entirely
Feeling
system.
and This the
and
spiritual
consciousness
seeming
truths the
knowledge, All
is
strong
apj)ointments
of
unwise
heart,
circulation
body,
which
.
(88)
and caused
playing
force
the
either human
of
of
the
them
have
present
the of
dercurrent, un-
nervous
of
sciousness con-
nerves.
God,
or
viz., man-assumed self-assertion.
sinful
griefs, fears,
will, hold
action,
nerve
results
upon
frights, shocks, or
the
intelligence
thought,
product
emotions, of
are
in
whose
of, but
the
not
back
the
at
influencing
action
nerve
which
cause,
does
further
rest
memory
still
is
unconsciously,
the
bodyi
the
of
ailments
states
have
may
condition
of
state
present
although
thought),
present
full, for
The
thought.
"
action
responsive
gives
ever
immediate
the
in
account,
power
more
of
nature
long
disappeared
the
over
sway after from
dis-
the ory. mem-
cidents in-
90
god's
wisdom,
truth, Lord
of the life. of
Jesus,
"Be
in heaven
What
1
the
shall
of
omnipotence
make
of love
3
Man
for
of
life:
which
is
perfect fruits is created by
Christ:
'*Let
1
27;
Gen
etc.
law
Father
Man
through
image,"
proof
gave
the
"
your looks
be?
harvest
God,
Our
in
man
15, 16; Eph.
:
law
as perfect, even Saviour perfect." The
is
us.
the
Redeemer
divine
alone
perfectness, in personal and exacts Example,
therefore
ye
in
His
to
Christ
their
Spirit, in
Saviour,
our
obedience
us
Christ.
Jehovah,
of the
healing
eousness, justice, peace, purity, rightthe the personality of uod,
mercy, revealed
is
God,
fruits
of
joy,
eta, the
laws
26,
:
Us Col.
9.
:
life is ever his from spiritual creation, and the but Christ God; immortality comes through Jesus this is the reof the soul : "And cord only quickening power hath this life that God life, and given to us eternal is
a
"
is in
Son."
His is
Man the
by
1 John
tlireefold
a
:
11, 12
being,
creation
of his
law
5
dominion
is the
faith
manifested
in
"Marvel
in
us
know
This
new
knowledge
a
is eternal
reflect
must
birth, of the
tliyself "
"Thou
etc., is the
of
power
Rev. faith"
our
:5-8.
21
from
"
full
the
to
thee, soul's
Father
and
power
and
is the this
true
whether
shalt
the
over
the
measure
way."
the
true
same manifesting the and act speech Thought, divine mind Divine produces
whether
control
death. of
unto
or
by
mind,
and
the
am
23.
earthly human thought, unwise sickness; and through
Abraham
I said
:
Ye
be
must
quickening, of the
born
reveals
Son, whom
to
life.
knowledge
This Man
says:
not
again."
"I
that
of
Finisher
and
through
Jesus
Jesus.
and
second
the
over
Author
"Jesus
6
acknowledged
weaknesses i. e., the inheritance, sin fears, false education, also
Rom.
spirit,soul and body, and ually spirit and soul (when spirit-
a
the
have quickened) body; and the humanly
Christ, power
;
love
or
true
the
Lord
first commandment.
wisdom
of
intelligence concerning in thought, speech and results
the
are
know
To
false
thy
to
God
the with
God divine all
God.
life, act.
mind.
of
Thought
thought.
false. or
the
reveals
is to
know
wisdom.
thy heart,"
LESSON
CHARACTER
THE
correct,
premise the depends
therefore
be
of
intelligence. It the moving power
is
boundless, of the
The to
are
we
mind
is
if
statement,
a
conclusion.
divine
THOUGHT.
AND
MIND
truth, if
divine
The
II.
OF
the
Upon
9l
BODY.
AND
SOUL
SPIKIT,
FOR
the
reach
and
divine
a
Source
only
clusion. con-
of
true
real, substantial,
eternal,
universe
be reasoning must premise
of
man.
in proportion knowledge God-given he voluntarily, or unconsciously, turns Source of to the as intelligence, and, facing God, reflects the divine wisdom, in spirit,soul and body. mind divine properties, by qualities and Analyzing known the guish eternal living forces, we distinor as powers, Man
this
possesses
the
wisdom
divine
self-assumed
of "knowledge from generation
transmitted
that
great abundance has which world,"
from the
been
regarding
generation,
to
of
the
is manifested
through attributes, so, the qualities wisdom, likewise, embracing and of love, light, truth, intelligence, mercy, powers when reflected purity, joy, rest, justice, faith, etc.; and in close with relation God; (enacted) in man, brings him and true intelligence is revealed as ever resting in God. Life is worldly God from wisdom; independent a delusion The of essential of human thought. principles life the God the creative forces, are everlasting powers, life of
As
man.
God
is His
will
of
thereto set
as
will
he
infinite
divine
love,
bringing
the
forth
in
John
shall
know
Rev.
22
:
17.
liberty." in and
Christ
2
7:17:
of the
"Where Cor.
Jesus,
death.*'
blessings and
3
hath
Rom.
made 8
take
the
Spirit
of
"For
17.
:
2.
of the will
man
any
obedience
Father, do
His
doctrine.'*
the :
law,
promises
"If
will, let him
"Whosoever
invisible
immutable,
the me
law
free
of life
water
the
Lord
of the from
freely."
is, there
Spirit
the
law
is
of life, of
sin
god's
92
the
Searching
wisdom,
will follow
NATURE
in
ATTRIBUTES
Spirit: John Love:
4
Mark
truth:
Light:
14
1 John
1
8
12
54:
10; Col.
Cor.
13
(the law
98
1 Cor. Matt.
Power:
28
5
Phil.
Lowliness:
:
:
1
4
3
:
4.
:
charitv).
of
9, 10, 14.
:
15
13; 1
:
11
:
John
14
Mercv: Trust:
15
Matt. Matt.
5
Isa. 26
Mark
Hope: Rom. Agreement:
5
Thess.
5
4; John
7; 9
:
John
8
13;
11 :
Matt
:
11
1
18
:
Peter :
:
8. 8
:
10; Acts
:
1
:
34; Mark
Heb. :
17.
:
5; Jas. 5
:
10
:
35.
4. 11
:
26.
8.
23.
:
54.
Psalms 40
136. :
4. 11
41; Matt.
22; James
5;
20.
9.
3, 4; Psalms
:
5
16;
:
:
4.
:
1
:
23
:
6
19;
27; 1
:
:
Tliankfulness: Faith:
:
Matt.
Peacemakers: Honor:
:
15
7; Luke
:
4
2.
34; 1 Peter
19; Rom.
1
5
Rom.
Obedience:
:
Eph.
Forgiveness: Peace:
21
Luke
16; 1 Cor.
:
29.
3 Rom. 9: 15; 1 Peter Compassion: 1 : 8, 9; Rom. Heb. Righteousness:
Patience:
5:8.
12.
12
:
17.
:
2
17; Heb.
10
FORCES.
9.
:
12; Matt.
:
:
2:3; Prov.
Acts
who
17.
5 : 5. 6; Prov. 22 1 Peter Humility: 17 : 21. Unity: Eph. 4 : 1-7; John
Impartiality:
LIVING
"
:
3
2:6.
5; 11
:
all
to
12.
:
18; Rom.
:
17
9; Mai.
:
3
Matt.
Meekness:
qualities
44.
:
21; Rom.
Isa.
107
Psalms
5
6; 1 Tim.
:
Kindness:
Holiness:
revealed
tributes at-
10.
:
10; James
:
Psalms
Equity:
following
2:5.
Goodness:
1
8
14; 1 John
:
111
Psalms
Charity:
the
SPIRIT
7; John
:
5; John
:
Psalms
Purity:
GOD's
15:23;Col.
Wisdom:
their
63; Rom.
:
6; 16
:
89
OrderilCor.
with
30, 31; Matt.
:
Psalms
Justice:
find
OF
24; 6
:
12
John
we
blessings promises, of righteousness.
law
the
AND
healing
and
accompanying
and
of
Scriptures,
divine
of
laws
5 3
:
19; Amos
:
:
25; Eph.
15; 1 Cor.
15. 3
:
3.
10
:
13.
5
:
20.
FOR
Glory: Luke Chastity: 1
2:
2 Cor.
Cheer:
Matt
:
9
Matt.
Strength:
3
9
14, 15
1
11
:
15
:
31
4
Matt.
2; Psalms
Endurance:
2
:
1 Peter
Rom.
Forbearance:
Gal.
Belief:
3
Rev.
Judgment: Joy: Rom. Let
15
inheritance
disease
for
This
Christ
of
our
4
5
:
in
stands
its
7.
:
:
1.
22.
God-given
"
enable
will
ness, sick-
weakness,
inherited
be
to
of
door
the the
Comforter,
the
of
only
soul,
Holy
of
men" for
supreme,
attributes,
reveals
mental
a
peace,
for
the
the
as
and,
and
of
all
qualities, of
God's
sense
of
etc.
power,
of, "Be
mistake
of God.
reveals
alone,
knowledge
command
source
we
Christianity,
spirituality
man
sins.
darkness,
Christ's
of
blinded
remain
forever
on
ness righteous-
soul
the
us
follies and
spiritual and
Teacher
true
of sin, of
to
should
we
weaknesses,
justice, patience, Lord, whose
14
Spirit our omnipotence
mirroring
otherwise
doctrines
Love
12
1, 2.
:
His
and
judgment,
errors,
divine
13.
10.
:
receive
presence
:
22; Heb.
:
14, 15; John
:
9.
103
destroy, all human infirmity, supposed the Open parentage.
religious morality the
10
is our presence first work is to convince
Stumbling
Love
:
healing.
(see charts),
"the
28
11; Psalms
:
7; John 8
5-7.
:
18.
:
25; Matt. 1
1
Chron. 13
35.
:
2 Peter
14.
:
to
or or
whose
and
to
18
25; Eph.
:
"
2; 19
:
spiritual
earth,
as
:
and
through earthly and permit the Ghost,
:
5
13; Neh.
:
above,
rise
to
us
in
3
16
believe
us
1
24.
24; Psalms
22; Mark
:
2.
9.
:
:
18
:33; James
18
:
17:5, 22.
3.
:
Sincerity: 2 Cor. 2: 17; 1:12. Gal. 5 : 22, 23; Temperance: Willingness: 1 Cor. 9 : 17; 1 Honesty: 2 Cor. 8 : 21; Heb. Pitv:
13
6; Psalms
2 Tim.
Gentleness:
11
Heb.
;
28; Heb.
:
Ex.
21; Col. 1:27; John
3:
1, 2; 2 Cor.
:
93
BODY.
AND
2.
:
Josh.
Courage: Rest:
14; 1 Cor.
Peter
Grace:
SOUL
SPIRIT,
of ye
that
wondrous
therefore
life of
our
perfect," leaves
god's
94
claim
no
than
the
into
the
God
through forgiveness
the
"
other of
sin
transforms Spirit alone glory to glory, until, we awake
His
from
image,
same
sin
from
man
of
life.
sanctified
healing
of
of
freeing appointed way
His
with
the
for
the
and
laws
us
likeness.
THE
MIND
SELF-ASSERTION.
OF
in the analysis of intelligence, are Confronting us, assumed whose qualities, and opposing powers, tions operaand self-will, by self; are are tnrough prompted viz., se//-interests,se(f-happiness, seif-praise,se/f-justificaThese and tion, .se/f-sanctification,etc. are recognized admitted into lives, at first, through sin and rance, ignoour then in self, willingly. These qualities centered life of of the the give rise to fear (the greatest enemy And material laws, through body). dependence our on belief of life in the body as an independent existence, our the
reverses
Paul
entire
this
of
speaks
of the
order
truth
condition
of
of God. mind
the
"fleshly "carnal the mind," mind," declaring it to be enmity and incapable of receiving the things of the against God foolishness the unto nally carSpirit; for spiritual things are Man's minded. the this of thoughts, product life in but them, falsely-assumed intelligence, have no ness, misleading, bringing forth as their fruits sin, sickare and
disease
Yielding we
become
death. the
to
the
unhallowed
laws
of
servants
of
sin, under
death. and of darkness powers In the following list of qualities, born
the
sufferings, and
sorrows,
destructive
thought. DESTRUCTIVE
Anger: Avarice:
Matt.
Bitterness
FORCES.
4:
5:22; Eph.
1 John
Arrogance:
Prov. of
as
3
:
8
26.
17; Luke :
16
:13.
13.
spirit:Eph. James Changeableness:
4 1
: :
31.
8; 4
:
8.
unrighteousness, the to bondage of
sin,
we
beliefs, of
trace
human
FO]^
Oovetousness:
Mark
Cruelty: Prov.
11
Deceit:
Prov.
12
Jer.
17
Discord:
Prov.
6
Luke
Disobedience:
Fear:
3
5:
3 8
James
3
Matt.
10
1
Prov.
Haughtiness:
Prov.
Hatred:
15
Injustice: Luke
Indecision:
9
3
18
;
John
3
14
Rom.
:
3
2
Revenge:
:
4
;
:
13.
20.
17.
:
Acts
17:
23.
: :
21; Gal.
:
5
21 ;
:
Eph.
13
:
12
:
:
18.
8.
Cor.
11
:
2, 3; Prov.
13.
:
1.
3:13;
:8-10;
3
5
18, 19.
8, 9, 10.
Col.
James
Rom.
15
4:17,18.
Quarrelsomeness: Rudeness:
2
Rom.
Powerlessness:
:
8.
2: 15, 16.
Partiality: James Prejudice: Eph.
9; 9
8.
14
James
1 John
:
18.
12.
:
16
2 : 14-16. Insincerity: James 1 : 15. Impurity: Titus Idolatry: Eph. 5 : 5; Rev. 21 Jealousy (godly jealousy): 2 Malice: Eph. 4 : 31.
Pride:
:
:
24
:
36.
:
Phil.
Mercilessness:
35; 19
4
18.
:
1
1 John
19; Prov.
:
:
7; 13
:
3. 4;
10
1 Cor.
Shamelessness:
26-32
:
10; Job
10:
Intemperance:
4
:
16
16:
Heb.
Impatience:
2:9-11.
2:6, 8, 9.
Rom.
Ignorance:
2:6-8.
4.
:
18-20;
:
23;
:
10
11
Rom.
Contentions:
1 John 4
28; Heb.
Hopelessness: John
1 Peter
12-19;
14-16.
Matt.
Heartlessness:
9.
:
7; James
:
:
:
9.
2:21-25.
19, 20;
:
1 Cor.
Foolishness:
Rom.
:
29.
John Rom.
17
6.
:
Rom.
Darkness:
17.
:
16-19.
:
12:
20
5.
:
2 Thess.
Doubt:
Jer.
12
0^
BODY.
10.
:
20-22;
Rom.
Distrust:
Enmity: Envy:
17; 12
:
AND
22, 23; Ex.
:
8:49;
Dissimulation:
Disorder:
7
:
John
Dishonor:
SOUL
SfPIRIT,
Eph.
1 Thess.
17. 19, 20, 21,
2 :2, 3. 5
:
14,
0
:
34.
96
god's
laws
of
healing
Subtlety: Acts 13 : 9-12. 1 : 13-17. Temptation: James 1 : 15, 16. Unchastity: Titus Unforgiveness: Matt. 6 : 15. Uncharitableness: Untruthfulness: 21
:
1
Rom.
14
John
2:21,22;
Prov.
Psalm
Unrest:
21
John
Unbelief:
3
:
2, 3.
8:44,
Rev
45;
Prov.
10
Isa. 47
Indifference:
Heb.
life, and
5
from all
until
:
that
brings Ye In
must
the of
into
man
be
born
9; Isa. 64:
James
5
6, 7.
1, 2, 3. result
of
seeks
to
ever
the
everlasting intelligence. From
false
estimates
to
never
the
by
and
one
from
born
"
we
of
of the
find
the
a
blend
truths
of
thence
have
we
with
united
delivers
and
again'*
Thus
be
man's
life, worldlv
of
dependence.
glorious liberty
following truths good and evil:
:
ultimate
with
world
the
:
Man
cancelled
the
15
11.
the
truth
Father,
is
overcomes
20;
12-19;
result
the
our
sin
:
8, 9, 10,
worldly wisdom, desires, worldly fears and drifted
6, 8, 9.
22, 23, 30, 31.
all
arises
:
26-32.
reveals
of
calls
18; 2
2:8.
inheritance.
human and ways the contradictions
:
6, 7.
:
:
:
3
death
of
1
39, 40.
Matt.
Carelessness:
law
:
17
Self-righteousness:
The
9; Rom
:
6, 7; Jonah
:
Acts
Superstition:
2.
5-11.
: :
32
Heb.
Willfulness:
:
12, 15, 18, 19.
:
21
7
17, 18.
:
1
5
Isaiah
Viciousness:
Vanity:
17
6; 42
:
Unwillingness:
"
13
John
13; Matt.
1 John
39
Heb.
:
Luke
Ungratefulness: Unrighteousness:
laws
Cor.
1
27.
Unkindness:
'*
1-17;
:
Him
only power bondage and child
of
God.
Spirit.
application
the
of
"
Whatsoever
measure
again," also, yourselves servants obey; whether ye rigktemmiesB? you
"
"Know to
of
ve
mete
ye
not
obey, sin
unto
his
shall that
to
servants
death,
be
or
measured
whom ye
of
are
ye to
obedience
to
yield whom uuto
god's
98
declares is
that
thief
a
is
he
and
laws
that
op
'climbeth
robber."
a
heauno
other
up some triune
The
The
First,
Teacher,
as
Second,
Again,
the
as
is stated
Comforter,
first,to reprove
Second,
in
1 Cor. John
in
world
the
same
fore, there-
manifestation,
positively essential to a knowledge as taught by Jesus. office of the Holy Ghost-
doctrine
the
way
of the
Christian
2:10-15. 16:7-15.
of
sin.
righteousness;" and Third, "of judgment" "Of Me" not sin, because on (Jesus). "Of they believe and Me I go to My Father righteousness, because see ye more." because Of the no prince of this judgment, world His is judged in the set (God having judgment evil). beginning of good over reveals As to himself "Teacher," the Holy Ghost man in a mirror; himself shows as man as unworthy, a child of unrighteousness. This is an inward revelation viction con"of
when truth
his
of to
power
truly
do
is
true
conversion
the
this
The
Me
Second, Third,
all
is set
is
of
aside
Whosoever
the
has
the
that
can
wondrous wili"
Spirit intercedes, and will man's is given to for
will
the
the
in
man
of
and
of
following
eousness. rightterms:
and
He
I,
even
Saviour."
^'quickening"
and
joy
health
in
Lord,
the
CHRIST.
that
"I,
"judgment"
even
man.
and
power this
know
behold all things are away; henceforth is for "the things of
office
no
only "
the
to
alone
truth"
And
righteousness Holy Ghost.
Saviour:
there all
warning, place,
acknowledgment
God-appointed beside
of
state
desiring
is the
sin.
search
THE
His
of
and
peace
ever-present
First,
and
passed
are
God,
Spirit
will
the
self-will
new." for
to
takes
and
to
from
man
things
become
this
work,
describes
Paul
God/'
this
heeds
Lord,
"Old
"The
subject
man
the
life.
convert
power If
turns
man
is
the
the
am
Lord,
and
Isa. 43:11.
power power
is
through to
execute
Christ the
same.
John 1 John
2
The
:
As
of the alone
Jesus
John
15:26;
of His
and
presence
hearts to
power
Man The and
is
TRIUNE
threefold
a
OF
NATURE
being
spiritual nature, light of that which
The
the
soul
Isa. 61
a
:3;
of
MAN.
spirit,soul
wisdom,
lies the
wherein
power, by the
is
spirit(the complete in its alone
which
free-will, that
possesses
body.
and
can
responsible and free to accept or reject any and ing of choosor things,and is capable of self-destruction life. Although in itself without wisdom, yet, through fested is maninatural of God "spiritin man," the wisdom the
voice"
small
soul, and that
and
warn
the
man
more
readily
direct
violation
heart-breaks, others,
we
of
an
trace
may
conscience; much
how
blaming
when of
earthly
Therein
will, read, "I
at
not
to
honest
many
look
reveals
at ourselves
Word
of
God,
a
law
God
away
make bestow
upon
of
evil; the
from
Him,
of
great of
our
God-
our
worldliness.
soul's as
even
the
misuse
a
and
lay
physical suffering,we
to the
lies the or
to
sorrows
heartaches
world, fate, circumstances, and
the
disobedience
many how
God-given free-will, and the appropriation given spiritto selfish purposes, pleasures,and
could
"still
the
of
conscious
mind.
How
God,
it becomes
speaks the law of right unto man. alone unbelief can neglect and will which of the guide ever spirit perfectly than the reasoning faculty
ever
and Wrong-doing quench this wisdom
sin
for
it
to
of
pleads
save.
governed of God, perfect and soul) is the creation nature, as His workmanship.
all
that
love
the
22:13. THE
make
ing destroy-
of life,by
our
by
life shown
by teaching
within
voice
16:7.
10:22.
Luke
the truth
devil, and
fear, His
out
recognition Rev.
John
Father.
the
and
w^ay
of the
works
Ghost.
Holy
reveals
the
living example
casteth
10:10;
life.
having through personal
"Mediator," the
bestow
to
power
99
BODY.
25.
Bestower
Christ
a
All
5:22-30.
AND
SOUL
SPIRIT,
FOR
power in Isa.
to turn,
45:7
we
evil" and create (not sin). God peace, condition. free-will under any other
499003
100
god's
God
asks
obedience
nothing gift of here
come
"
But
In
free
a
gift;
oflFering lies the
life
eternal
involves
be
our
in I
"Behold,
if any hear man in to him, and
**Blessed
heart, which it must
voluntary life, health, happiness,
Godliness.
of
knock;
us
and
now,
mystery
Me."
to
love, his
commands.
compulsory. God
healing
of
his
man
his
to
and
will
of
laws
His
Son.
stand
will
guidance, Such
the
at
voice, and
My
and
is the
door the
open
and
door,
with him, and sup do His commandments,
he
I
with
that they that have they may right to the tree of life." The body is subject to the law of righteousness, which frees from fear and Paul in states liability to sickness. Cor. 3:16: "Know 1 the temple of God, ye not that ye are and that the God dwelleth in you?" **If any Spirit of defile the him of shall God God, temple man destroy; for is holy, which the temple of God And .temple ye are." know that your again in 1 Cor. 6:19: **What! body ye not Ghost which which is the temple of the is in Holy you,
God,
of
have
ye
with
bought
are
a
and
not
are
ye
price; therefore
glorify
For
own?
your
God
in
ye
your
are
body,
God's." spirit,which are The body is a symbol expressing the soul, character, their ing and revelation in act, revealspiritual nature, and "a living soul," or a "quickened spirit." as man
and
in your
THE
First
TRINITY
OF
the
manifestation,
MIND.
mind
common
personal
of
sense.
the
Second,
spiritual or mind The of personal in common knowledge gained througli the avenues hearing, tasting, feeling, of knowledge The error
/ I
of
seeming
and
set;
and
ocenn
lines,
as
the
trutlis stars
appear rails the
with
and
humanity; of personal sense, smelling. thus
appear touch at
to a
mind,
common
or
obtained The
railroad
sun
tutes consti-
information
viz., seeing,
is the appears
receiving to
rise
disappear; the sky remote point; parallel
and
to
seem
of
sense,
realities.
as
mind.
unquickened quickened mind. or
the
Third,
/
intellectual
a
track, appear
to
converge
SPIRIT,
FOR
point in the distance, delusive knowledge ever at
which
is
lead
based of
errors
life is also
of external
true
into
lOl
BODY.
Opinions
etc.
a
that
AKD
SOUL
this
upon
and
action;
opinions
of
true
himself. concerning man This The intellectual unquickened or reasoning mind. mind of personal embraces, to a large degree, the mind this from and gained sense opinions and knowledge of self-happiness, self-interests, selfviz., the mind source, self-assumed motives, desires, theories, beliefs, and worldly thus
formed
wisdom. ing, calculating, tyrannical, domineerself-asserting, subtle, deceptive, inventive, destructive, wise full of fear, politic, seemingly yet grossly ignorant, selfworld" of this adapted to *'the kingdom (pride and whose only be aggrandizement), highest attainments can for Christianity, an morality, too often mistaken a attempt It is
to
logical, shrewd,
blend This of
sin
intellectual
nothing
yet
wisdom
unto
think
man
he
as
he
ought
The
man.
soul's
idolatry,
The
body
is
with
all, through
at
knoweth
asks
know,"
God
to
God."
suffering did
realizing, as anything he
man,
the
is
sacrificed
is **foolishness
Paul,
knoweth
reveal
to
or
His
bears
justice,
the
Spirit of quickened
and
the
stamp
of
righteousness, forth
love,
bringing of God, knowledge
increased
an
MIND.
QUICKENED
God
of
purity, peace, the Spirit, and
the
of
him.
wisdom
The
to
will
the
which
that
THE
seek
or
unbelief.
and
wisdom,
*'if any
the
with
if awakening comes, disappointments, w^hen
life's that
love
of
spiritual darkness,
work
The
law
the
of
fruits to
all who
Life.
intellect
the
discerns
true
from
will, controlled
by the Spirit, is capable of guiding the body aright, rendering it a fitted vessel for the indwelling Spirit, thus protecting it from seeming
disease
The power resour5es
and
The
readily
true.
accident.
quickening of
trust, rather
Spirit
and than
a
reveals
desire upon
to
"the
faith, lean arm
and
upon of
gives the
flesh."
the
infinite This
god's
102
reliance
cling
to
the
the
to
of all
Source
SOURCES
There
three
are
helpless child,
earthly blessings
learn
we
love
and
to
"
KNOWLEDGE.
OF
or
avenues,
a
whence
from
sources,
life, viz., sensation,
of
knowledge phenomena.
obtain
a
life.
of
Giver
like
love, and,
awakens
healing
of
laws
to
intellect, and
SENSATION.
in character
"Sensations,"
physical.
All
sensations
and
of If
sensations
result, and
may
are
peace,
this
intellectual, spiritual, mental
attitude
of
intellect
quickened
and
and
conditions
to
body. spiritual truth, harmony
are
spirit,
to
rest, satisfaction, and
tumultuous;
seem
of
from
external
although
ours,
are
revealing the spirit and intellect
constantly
are
is the
contentment
arc
conditions and surroundings and through faith the body partakes life and is sustained its living by
presence.
"Sensations,'' in the intellectual
realm
or
the
unquickened
restless; fleeting,changing, uncertain, vague, Fears of fear and doubt constantly filling the mind. disease of the of death, of the body and uncertainty and consciousness of inability to meet these future ditions conthe spirit and successfully, affect both body, and "Sensations" in the physical life are inharmony reigns. under dominion the of personal or purely of the senses, mind,
are
intellectual
mind.
These
resulting in enslavement feelings are earthward, of will, suffering, sin death. and Paul "Who exclaims, shall deliver the body of this death?" from me INTELLECT.
The
intellect
is
governed by triune forces, viz.,the spiritual the mind, or quickened reasoning or unquickened the mind and of mind, physical sense. Accordingly, as love from false of true hate, we we or premises reason or filled with life,or are ing yieldpeaceful or fearful, and are are to the destroyer, death.
FOR
SPIRIT,
103
BODY.
AND
SOUL
PHENOMENA.
Pbeuomena, and
should
That
be held
ever
treated
or
as
effects,and
as
is termed
varied
forms
health
of
The
body is the Man is spirit,soul material only, for
mental
:
considered
states
and the
is the
body
is the
result
tions. condi-
spiritual
or
of
spirit and soul (not the man). bodv, a spiritual being and never Vithout is the dead. body spirit
revealed
IV.
PHYSICAL
THE
6
results,
or
be
never
disease
or
LESSON
"The
eflFects
always
are
causes.
which
these
revealed,
as
BODY.
temple
the
of
living
God."
Cor.
2
16. Gren.
1:26
the
reveals
formation
God.
An
it
in the
was
is
substance
also
spiritual;
as
body given
the
as
of
Gen.
work
2:7 the
of
plant creation,
veals re-
Lord before
earth.
spoken of by apostle Paul
of
the
body Isaiah
prophets
the
as
the and
work
of
the
Jeremiah,
Lord
and
is
by
the
The
termed the phenomena, body, is the And all visible manifest). spirit (made result of the workings of spirit through
of
creation
of tlie
account
formation
The
creation
is the
"
law.
Spiritual is
force
(manifested
one
(manifested
one
application
is
of
force
and
stance Sub-
in
in
degrees). properties). "Law
its
relation
is
in
substance
to
the
creation/' So force
long as spiritual law life aright, and have
To
violate
the
laws
results
in
disorder
is maintained and
(of God) and
we
directing
are
health.
consciously death. Quoting
or
ignorantly, from
a
late
104
GOD*S
writer
OF
HEALINO
the
its following description of a cell, we see law and of expression. nature ultimate element of organized matter or is called cell, microscopic in its proportions a
"The
invisible
wholly and
"A
LAWS
to
animal,
cell is
tlie unaided
the
primitive
eye,
identical
representation
velous mar-
stance suband
in
ble vegeta-
of
life
dividuali in-
of
organized living matter, having a determinate form, constituting an individuality capable and of nourishing reproducing itself.*' substance is spherical, this fundamental "Primarily known in construction, protoplasm, highly complex as and of oxygen, gen, containing the elements hydrogen, nitroand carbon, sulphur phosphorus, and distinguished all other from modes of matter vital by the manifest qualities of absorption, appropriation, reproduction and disintegration." "This of every cell is the basis of living economy,' and fluids entities and solids such the of all composed are or vegetable. The cuticle, muscularorganic bodies, animal tissues, nerve-tissues, cartilage, bone, blood, and lymph all built
are
"A
a
up
complex
vitalized
mass
and cell
nucleolus,
constituted is or
of cellular
entities."
triune, consisting of center,
the
surrounding protoplasm."
the
highly nucleus,
portion, known as cells Cell life increases two by subdivision, ever no held other to each by a coming in contact, but they are law of spirit attraction. The impartation of healing for soul and spirit,as well desire for the body, is the gift of Grod, to such as as read: for in 1 Cor. 12:7-9 "The earnestly this power; we manifestation to proof the Spirit is given to every man fit the withal. For the is given by of to one word Spirit another the word to of knowledge wisdom; by the same faith by the same the Spirit; to another Spirit; to another Spirit." gifts of healing by the same add Can by the application of drug medication, one, and to cell, created wisdom, a by the infinite anything of God, inherent sustains whose and law, by the word
and
the
outer
god's
106
of
substance
the
Again,
healing
of
laws
body
the
fluidic and "Ethereal, qualitiesof matter: and reflects soul appropriates, absorbs divine
human
the
or
"nature,
respond Digestion is the material law of spirit, in changing for the
condition
the
do
of
does
acquires
direction,
of
mercy, True
mind, true
relation
habit,
but
of
a
me
the
works
or
continuance
of
subject to change by likewise consciously; so habit, but
is also
V.
POWEK.
will
is
inseparable
the
attributes
to
God,
with
of
from
manifestation
the of
character
the
do? to
Paul:
of
the God:
will
other
none
*'Lord, what
will
than
wilt
thou
"
the
essential
through which of God. knowledge
Divine
have
can
did
as
say
he
is
based
great compassion
principles
man
avenue
Master's
into
is
is therefore
divine
will
and
Obedience
only
the
liquids
intelligence, compassion, sympathy, justice, truth, light, etc. harmony, goodness, power, will is one. true true life,one (There is but one into true will.) Therefore, when one man comes
God's, have
and
God;
and
nature
absolute
and
Perfect
invisible
etc.
WILL
Wisdom,
bodily
perfect digestion,
act
to
and
to control
with
LESSON
Spirit
the
(the spiritual),and
unconsciously or body unconsciously from will. the higher mandate
the
subject
interfere
we
man
one any of the will
act
an
the
body.
seeks
power
circulation, mind
of the
of self-assertion
in
action
the
the
of
solids
both
action
love
nutrition, As
As from
do
revelation
nutrition
one
will
the
as
infinite
of
either
so
of
is but
There
only
even
solid."
three
to either.
functions
a
the
represents
in
love and
can
and
of
obtain
truth;
repeated
God
the
is
the
promise
hence
statement,
the that
FOR
love
the
was
the
relation
to, and mercy will. Man
divine
will
To the
to
the
is to
mind
spirit,or Will
time
(the
of
is
presented of promptings
man. us
choice). The yields itself the
of
the
to
of
moment
every soul
of
braces em-
man
righteousness,
unto
and
Master,
is filled
with
blessedness the righteousness, and comes Spirit of truth; or, yielding to sin, beof idolatrous worship, resulting in of
the
and
the
not, confronts
servant
servant
suffering
from
of
body
obedience
whatever
refuse
or
(ever
of will.
whether
we
joy
in
the
death.
soul,
The
and
the and
peace freedom
to
will, which
becomes
the
an
omnipresent
the and
action
will
or
we,
is
God's
of
shalt"
"Thou
man.
upon first
the
of
knowledge
love) implies
choice,
soul
all
and
consent
for
of,
that
and
enactment
rests
judgment
in
spoken
and
commandments,
great
107
BODY.
AND
(divine) law;
fulfillingof the understanding
conscious
two
SOUL
SPIRIT,
tortured
by
enslaved
an
will, enslaved
by
affections,
appetites, desires, passions, pride, self, and chained and of spiritual darkness unbelief, by a world and well of mind and body, may by feebleness cry out, shall "Who from the of this death? deliver bondage me
"
blest
And of
is that
Spirit
the
will
to
life
of
law
the
from
of
and
"Watch Search
for
a
in
Only Paul
in and
Thus
the
heart,
and to
man
the
of
armor
can
we
meet
this
not
into
God,
in of
measure
of
the our
and
said:
weakens
the
chastisement to
response a
to
the
a
desire
right spirit,which God.
beautifully described
so
the
the
of
and
endure
will
for
strength
world,
binds
renewal his
free
me
temptation." unswerving purpose,
often
Eph. : 13-18, can fully equipped
be
of
spirit
yield
law
"The
thyself.
that
comes
the
with
6
only,
is
enter
power
which
heart
enables
alone
the
ye
prayerful
Lord,
clean
The
Know
cry, made
hath
Jesus
kingdoms
that
Paul's
death."
faith.
subtle
with
the
Christ
and
the
pray,
the
will; and from
and
deeply
know
in
echo
can
righteousness
refused
Jesus
who
sin
manifest
spiritual power
to
soul
the
soul
rest
warfare
foes of the
from of this
soul, and
by
tion, temptalife.
calmly
108
god's
walk
in
laws
of
healing
the
Spirit, fulfillingnot the law of the flesh, but Spirit." Will is the basic and of all principle of all power soul the therefore the enter development; to power spiritual kingdom depends on man's voluntary obedience, and the co-operation with Spirit of God, and willing a of Christ Involved in this obedience the following are nhelaw
of the
inevitable "For
blessings and whosoever
is in
heaven,
mother."
the
Matt. that
"He
of eternal
promises
shall
do
same
is
will
the
of
which
Father
My
brother,
My
life.
and
sister, and
12:50.
doeth
will
the
of
abideth
God
forever."
lJohn2:17.
Paul, by willing submission, Christ.
Are will
The
or
we,
of
are
we
by
not, willing to be its
receives
man
led
was
the
of
led? direction
qualificationsor
self-assertion.
from
action Self-gratification is the root of human fundamental principle of all creed; the present of all individuals being the state of their wills
affections, for
Spirit
these
as
two
powers
life
the
sway
and
the
condition and
for
their
good
or
evil.
Will
seemingly,
power,
has
dual
a
in dual consists quality, however, viz., qualities of God, or One
or
the
necessarily clothe
the
other
of
will
with
the
manifestation,
or
contradictory
of
the
these
powers
fications, quali-
of
ness. dark-
must powers is the which pulse im-
two
desire,
of action.
Self-will
self-desires,
embraces
self-praise, destructive;
and
etc., the
and fruits
is
self-interests, self-happiness,
by
thereof
nature are
arbitrary cruel
and
hasty judgment,
acts,
and unrighteous unjust speech, retaliation, infliction of self-vindication, self-justification,heedless self and others. and mental physical suffering upon in Pan! not against flesh Eph. 6 : 12: "\Ve wrestle says but and blood, against principalities, against powers, of this rulers of the darkness world, against as^ainst the subtle in The wickedness most high places." S|)iritual t\"es
are
those
of
hypnotism,
mesmerism,
and
psychology
FOR
divine
the
or
or
by the will, revealing the
pure
restraining
in
shown
was
power,
109
BODY.
AND
directed
(falselyso-called) when The
SOUL
SPIRIT,
unrighteous will. law of suppression fullness
Christ
by
coming spirit of forgiveness, in the overthe to of evil with good, leaving all judgment stated "He that in John 12 : 47, 48: Word, rejecteth as receiveth not Me, and My words, hath One that judgeth shall judge that I have him; the Word spoken, the same in the last day." him And again the law of suppression of the active will was shown in His by the Master portrayal of the spiritual the terrible "humility," under oppression of sinful grace, and earthly rule. Thus shown "the way" that the will power we are may life's vicissitudes, and the meet to triumph gain power all desire tation manifesthem, to over by yielding express any
wonderful
Jesus, in His
of will Good
to
contrary
law.
divine
which inseparable from spiritualpower, is strength to the physical body. Disease is overcome in the inseparable by our confidence and in our strength of the Holy Ghost spiritual power The nature. Spirit is the Great Physician; man's tion acceptathe avenue of God's of this truth, through principles, the the to gives body. Spirit access Principles of truth, acts
are
faith, of
of
healing
love, of
of the
of will power,
through
realization
of
The the
From
the
out
of
die
body
of sin
in
Rom.
12
"Many
:
are
1, 2. called, but Close
subtle
for
healing for
the
of disease, is
the
of true
power
the
greater
love,
(to prove are
self is the
arise child
redeemed
few
of
the of
true
because
of
man
God).
the will),as
chosen,"
law
We
is stated
of
willingness. un-
the most self-analysis will reveal of temptation which of destroy life,whether cowardice, or spiritual pride, falsehood or
forms
worldly
ashes
these
soul,
the
greater
power. burial death, and
(the quickened to
for the
passive will;
the
must
door
healing
crucifixion,
soul.
the
truth, and
stronger the
the
the
open
body.
Concentration manifested
etc., will
wisdom,
or
8
110
GOD*S
LAWS
OF
HEALING
its with logical judgment, and idolatrous love false assumptions, reasonings and jealousy, or unbelief. worship, covetousness, envy, divine without, Sin is acting against, or sanction; and death." it is finished, bringeth forth "sin, when
yielding
from
human
to
LESSON
VI.
SUBSTANCE.
"In
Spirit exists, Creation
of
divine
God,
us
are
made;
can
we
know
formed
by
science
which
the
the
know
we
knowledge
of
His
and
a
whereof
substance God
we
Spirit
"
"
His
in
word,
image
likeness, and
us
will, of
alone
God,
this
the
dust
reveals
mysterious
most
of
the
the
and
wonderful
That
which
and
character
nature,
creation
of
Spirit,man. All
substance
is
is but
matter
THE
the
but
in
implies in
involved Creation infinite
spake,
in
MAN
OF
effect
wise
no
the
are
other.
of
is denominated
Spirit. SUBSTANCE.
SPIRITUAL
IS
condition to creation; necessary conditions the two separate,
solidity,is
a
Spirit evolves
matter;
as
is
matter
Spirit. is the
will, the and
spiritual.
visible
BODY
Visibility,or one
as
ground, "any restricts investigations to phenomena, our of life;as a law substance of the accurate no of Spirit." evidence no theory reveals
know of
Only can
His
materialistic
law
work
subSpirit proceeds, all stance. of God's hands, the product the quickening veals repower
ourselves.
by
give
from
only through
Created
To
is the
wisdom.'*
to
can
and
it
the
was
manifestation wisdom
and
done.'*
"The
of God
love
in of
the
wisdom
sustaining, perfecting
act, the
and
and
force
Spirit. love
of
'*He is
vealed re-
perpetuating
FOR
laws
SOUL
SPIRIT,
of creation/'
God
In
AND
is all
Ill
BODY.
fullness
and
perfectness
of life.
Phenomena,
motion,
visible
or
of
degree
or
attraction,
substance,
force, acting
exists laws
by
because
of
of
tion magnetiza-
and spiritual qualities,of the one only real substance Spirit. and in the umes Hydrogen proportion of two voloxygen, of H. to one of 0., produce The and water. power reality lies in the unerring, unchanging, spiritual law of substance true (eternal principles of God). The phenomena, water, being subject to change, we or
on "
the
reduce the
and
again
force, and
result water
substance,
universe
of
the
From
alone
that
Paul
for framed
our
spiritual
is
of
infinite
the
and
Mind
is
thought."
substance
reveals
flower
ethereal,
as
qualities with
force,
God
substance
the
of are
not
God
is to
hath
and
which
depend
knowledge by the word
of of
on
are
tion revela-
of God.
God
combines
already. the
in the
entire
nature
Spirit substance, evidence
substance.
God,
vegetable, the
and
re-creates
or
that
involved
laws
and
made
statement
all
and
each
utilizes,
man
which
star, the mineral,
the
to
kingdom,
confirms
character we
attribute
j)roportion
spiritual power, creates,
from
that
tiny
animal
and of
force, and
pressure,
therefore,
force,
is endowed.
substance
floral
the
the
of densification.
attribute
under
properties, degrees
ice; increase the
remove
solid, manifesting
and
is
^'Matter,
appears. under the
material
fluidic
result
is steam;
spiritual substance The
the
'*The
that
of
the
worlds which
and and senses were
things are Also not were things appear." seen mental realm the soul in realm) the spiritual quality, (the substance the faith, proves (the underlying power) of for the and evidence of things not seen. things hoped manifestation the of substance, most Man, being perfect of all mental is the aggregate qualities (through spiritual thus the reflect to inheritance), possessing the power of substance love, harmony, true or spiritual power Any violation, therefore, from purity, holiness, etc. any made
of
so
which
do
112
god's
conscious
cause,
is
physical
disease
It
is
productive
not
spirit,subject body because
of its visible
the
preserve
spirit,soul
heart
of
as
ingly seem-
is
of
natural
a
form.
soul,
and God's
of
man
and
body is the body
because
God,
fear
the
spiritual law, yet spoken
to
of
spiritual spiritual blight, or
and
disease, because
to
will, mind,
The
moral
of
law
the
of
death.
fear but
matter,
to
and
to
hkaling
unconscious,
or
substance,
of
laws
be
must
creation,
united triune
a
in
love,
being
of
of the heart must Every attribute be exercised from reflect the of love, to fully God, image involves (illhealth, liabilityto change anything less as the bodily condition). of health, as we out or express aflfections, Worldly prosperity, flattery, praise, the human beliefs mony harwisdom, or worldly produce may in one's soul, and consequently happiness and but basis the of the health, being self-happiness and intellectual sudden beliefs, the passions, or moval resenses,
body.
the
will's
the
(particularly
case
and
conditions
of these
result,
is too
as
enslavement
often
through
insanity, disease
invalidism,
affections), is
the
and
the
death,
health in mental that rests proving that or harmony physical happiness is fleeting and changeable. Animal, purely physical, health is easily, rudely and or health by fear, fright or accident; but quickly broken God and of man's spiritual knowledge resulting from sacrifice him of relation to (through self) is freedom sicknesses the from the resulting from bodily fear, and and of darkness, unbelief, ignorance superstition. powers less than in rests spiritual health, that which Anything God
Spirit
"
of the its
the
a
marvelous
delusion
of of
powers
the
human
wisdom,
unwortljy comprehends
soul, which
of creation. origin and purpose tual is constantly expressing physical, intellecHumanity of health. life, so-called spiritual conditions or is embraced
Health to
is
"
or
take union
Unity
from of is in
in His
Word
spirit,soul God.
the
and
Word and
of
God;
retain
body,
which
we
the
can
not
add
perfectness
is health.
of
god's
^\.\.
laws
of
HEALISii
VII.
LESSON
THE
The
CRUCIFIXION
crucifixion
Christ, Clirist.*'
Gal
and
cross
The
follow
life of the has
no
hath
the
Son
life.
unto
Tliis
way
of life and
and
the
the
our
work
of destruction
save,
or
of
The
Me."
the
Jesus, central
could the
through
first
the
to
His
to
of
slain
be
to
God,
could
His
for
law,
as
the
human
sion provi-
shall
will,
a
Calvary's
from
die,
not
from
the
early His
us
"Lord,
merciful
Me
seek
fulfil the
its terrible
And
answer.
that
the
of
law
find ing, healcross.
death the
became
cross
life. "
"
Jesus the
"
the
command
the
Egypt
sin and thus only become a curse pass portal of death, by accepting the cross, as is every it is written, "Cursed one testimony
through the
from
us."
body of man. anguish, wrung
and
bequeathed speaks to us
which
One,
in
life lies Thus
an
hangeth on a tree." willingly bearing
them
by
sinless
figure
Jesus
curse
has
Therefore,
is sin.
a
find
Saviour
for
that
ion. crucifix-
the
sin,'^ and
of
cry
"Those
saving love,
that
the soul This
must
all
of
sinfulness
in
Saviour.
a
is sacrificed
lives.
the our unbelief turns eyes from and of the cross strength, because crucifixion,by which, alone, we
yields, in gratitude,
heart
in
own
perish."
hearts,
human
And
exceeding
I
and
teachings
through
ours
first-born
health
life of
"the
life is
Passover,
our
single niglit.
realize
of Me."
the
separate
his
not
from
Unbeliefcaused a
taketh
with
our bearing directly upon "He Christ spiritual life apart from hath life,"having passed (consciously)
"Christ, in
"crucified
be
must
life of
the
in
that says, "He Me is not worthy
after
Master
Man
Christ
unbelief would
of
element
Jesus
20.
:
followeth
sin
death
2
essential
an
was
all who
and
ATONEMENT.
AND
power
gates of
God
of
sins
of death, He
freedom
our
became
loving
lived from
of
in
our a
world
His
own
again, the
obedience,
in
law even
sin-bearer
"
by carrying And body. whose of
the
unto
rection resur-
curae.
death,
terrible
the
conquered
sin, disease,
SOUL
SVmiT,
^OB.
results
and
enmity
AND
of
JJS
BODY',
disobedimce;
conquered
death.
The
crucifixion, as represented by the Scriptures and realized of Christ, is of two characters: by all true followers crucifixion
The
the
(by
of the
world) it is the
the
the
daily
cross;
the
the
human
of
union
unconditional the
through "One
like it
render
Truly thee, but
the
unto
possible for does
the with
not
us
with
all
of
Saviour
only
or
the
this
will; the the
are;
walk that
knowledge
w-alks
man"
say, have
silver; I
temptation; bearing alone permits
divine
have
endure
to
first crucifixion,
with
the
we
And
Son
the
self, wdiich
of
will
fiery furnace.
crucifixion
living sacrifice;" the
"a
of
soul
the
of
the
In
man.
death
surrender
and
nature,
redeemed
struggle the body
presenting of
of the
sinful
the
of
with
would
us,
crucifixion.
"Behold,
I
have
thee
chosen
refined
in
the
nace fur-
of affliction.'' this crucifixion all redeemed Through that this is the The knowledge only ourselves, or to see our silently,to endure that these not purifying fires. "Marvel be born Ye must again." The
of
nature
second
the
spoken of by Paul, where His sufferings is to share crucifixion
this
will
crucify
leadeth
endure
Master
bore
world
the before the
and
thorns
loseth
I say
that
to
But
those
his
unto
the
you, is that
share
Christ's who
"fools," and
bear
us,
sufier
ones
seek
the
world
path," that souls, who which
cross
the
them.
pearly gates hinge
the suffering. Yet joy of thy Lord," become that
way, loved
straight and narrow followed only by true
blessed
"*He
states
pass.
enables
crucifixion
of
glory.
the
to
life, is
Remember
he
must
''The
them.
unto
gladly
are
form
souls
thou
words, "Enter
hope
our
life shall
find
and
sacrifice
on
life
of
into
and the
rejoicing.
it."
the principlesof the following lectures, embodying ence studies, necessarily contain frequent referepigrammatical sometimes repetition of, the fundamental to, and The
principles used the
as
first laid
texts, in the
spirit,soul
and
in the
down
above
presentation of the body
of
man.
lessons, which laws
which
are
govern
LECTURE
THE
"Darkness
was
"Let
said,
involves
wisdom Creation As
and
the
God's
love,
sees
darkness
the
this
By
light.
The
God
light."
The
beginning
of
light
we
truths
taught
are
been
and
by
and,
fallen
vision
of
trast, con-
"image
reveals
the
God.
of to
light
image
called, the
light. creation,
full
true
own
spiritual
the
of
the
deformed
The
oppose
beauties
its
it has and
through
under
comes
which
of
we
revealed the
perfectly
become.
why
reasons
it
as
dwarfed
has
was
constitute
more
out
sees
And
deep/'
there
alike
are
man,
how
God"
of
the
of
and
involved
shadow of
face
light,
wisdom
soul
GOD.
light.
and
light
so
be
OF
the
creation
of
beginning
LOVE
upon
there
I.
the
see
of
image
true
God. teach
We or
excel
to
their
mold
of
nobility,
by
of
out
of
God
the "the
represent
personage;
representation mental
the the
not
sees
vision
perfect
of
Divine of
Ezekiel, God's
sensitive
model
(116)
"I
Image
light"
shall
be
the
Mount
On
fied satisof
through
manifested
was
And
Jesus.
Peter,
image.
plate"
cried,
likeness."
Thy
be
there
"Let
Psalmist
with the
form
Daniel,
glory
man
the
awake
I
glorified To
man^s
For
still declares,
darkness
Transfiguration the
honor. and
noted
some
to
to
God.
the
when
and
spiritual,
voice
The
according
strive
to
character,
future
power
the
reverses
emulation,
strong
some
to
given
children
our
of
James And
their
and the
John
light
hearts,
of
left
was
love, the
revealed
touching
spiritual
FOR
impression, As
God
flashes
which
SPIRIT,
SOUL
became
the
the
prepares
AND
yielded
light of the Holy Ghost divine lo, the image is stamped the inspiration of the life. Then the
itself the
upon and
the
as
with
man.
becomes
transforming
this
with
also
the
work face
of
power
out that, as knowing sounds, perfectly distinct
of
more
still small
voice"
alone
Love
cries, "Be
strength strength acting.
true
In
that
"
divine
is revealed
unto
reflection
out
of
know
all
love,
of
is
revealed
silence
the
I
that
silence
restrains
tested.
slowly
silence
the
glory
the
of
the
still,and
love.
reveals
so
filled
is
revealed
is
the
catch
to
rest,
we
love
Christ,
of
body
the
character
grace,
turned
whole
of
takes
vision
partaker
a
the
become
likeness
with
brightens
heart, and,
to
mental
of the
He
Himself,
that
there
lives.
their
unto
upon
single, the
face
flesh
the In
But
The
The
life,and
becomes
eye
light
of God.
spiritualcharacter
mold
to
power
heart
117
BODY.
"the God."
am
find
we
impulsive
our
ing think-
and
the
In
silence
resistance
of
evil.
passive faith temptation,
which
Out
the
Sword
and
character
love.
wins
silence
of the
The
Son
victory over brings strength
right
the
of
power
non-
the
of
trial and every for daily living.
is
extremity nature
must
Love
embraces
a
motive
j^et man,
has
Love
methods. is
all
of the
for
seeking; believing that,
an as
circumstances of birth, he through in the life,justifies himself through
is
remain of his
heart
love
when
that
love
forced
is afar
ofi^,and
finds, if and
through pain and sufiering, disappointment gloom,
life of
and
Desire
greater motive,
now
so
thought
a
makes
love's
divine
the principles reveals justice lovable, mercy
desirable.
laws,
principlesof
the
these
Love
all.
for
of Christ."
all
of
use
of love.
language
mind
involved
ways,
the
the
"the
"
wisdom and f)ossible, love's ove's
his
realize
we
value
is
is
omnipotence
same
silence
which
character
In
In
inestimable
the
of God, brought forth the armor tion," of salvabreastplate of righteousness," **the helmet "the gospel of peace," ''the shield of faith," "the those of the that reveal the Spirit," and powers of
"the
learn
we
ever,
trial, to
cry
row sor-
out
118
god's
Love
help.
for
and
the
sin, but
barriers
the
that
love
that
the
out
casts
disease
healing
of
covers
out
Love
and
sin
never
casts
love.
from
laws
reveals
and
the
lost
separate
traditions
of the
soul
world
natural
the
quench
gives for-
and
life and
destroy the body. To it possible to appropriate this love is life, and makes and the things of God, and know "blameless to be found in love." Love the omniscience reveals holy before Him of God of in creation, in the floral kingdom, in the stars and the rocks in in and ocean's heaven, grandeur, mountain Love reveals the as crowning man scenery. handiwork created creature "subjectto glory of God*s a Love that creature places within a vanity, but in hope." is capable of leading him the to understand spirit which creative of hand, a partakes of the nature spirit which of life is from God and love, for the breath partakes of the in his of God, nature man spirit life has implanted so "
him
within
the
of
nature
very
"the
God,
of
omniscience
love." the
is
Love
principle
the
motive itself
"the
conscience,
right
which of
from
thinking
wrong,
or
God
"
Have
enables the
us
we
unmerciful; from very
this
power the
falsehood; wisdom
man
there
before
of
spirit
There
of conscience. The
in
own
and
to
is
act
kindness Creator
man
from from in
may
God!
Oh,
ous marvel-
so
power
is
love
God*s the
is
right
"
created
of
from
one;
revealing man.
the
love from
act
"
that
than
more
dishonest
cruelty the
of
capable footsteps,right from dren. caring for His chil-
nature very the merciful
the
cliild
mind
the
the
distinguish
honest
the
of
voice
the
rests
thought that it was right, to distinguish
wrong? Resting within
voice
of
ever
do
to
wisdom
the
directing his within, guarding
the
the
within
the
in
that
so
designed
long
him,
love,
breast
own
be
spirit holds
God's
Oh, hath
his
natural
voice,"
wronff.
which
that in way, reveals unto
a
of
still small
of God!
love
the
The
living.
manifestation
the
know
his
of
his
of
holds
of his life; love power love itself should life, that
controlling
self. itthe
truth
the The
FOR
omniscience of
is revealed
of God
the
through
man,
yet knows
how
not
He
that
often
thoughts,
by power
thoughts, thoughts. the
or
He
thoughts
right to-day, evil
of
brain
knows
should
could
and
change
which
conscience,
of
is
a
stop thinking.
not
can
he
that
and
the
is
his trolling con-
think virtuous Man thought. can evil impure thoughts; godly thoughts, or of life to-day so that shape his course can of
he
or
But so
he
why
the receive may of God is revealed
the
that
knowledge the
in
that
so
and
actions
or
how,
both
the
perfect
he
knows
heart The
God.
of
eflforts of
to-day
course
thinks,
ordained
the
of
reveal
will
to-morrow
hath
his
shape
can
born
be
will
to-morrow
to-day. God
yet
voice
he
that
he
man
only
capacity
thinks,
of
thoughts
habits not
the
He
why. knows
He
intellectual
which
by
119
BODY.
in the
power
or
thinking being. knows
AND
SOUL
SPIRIT,
and
cience omnis-
construction
of
the
that Man knows he moves physical organization. with marvelous has the perfect ease; that the eye power wonderful he the to adjust itself to light; recognizes of wrist ankle and flexibilityof motion joints; and yet he realizes not the love of God, in in creating the form this disease accident When comes perfect manner. or movable, imand find the we joints stiffened, the limbs us, upon the think to feeble, then begin to we power
what
realize
recognize
have
we
the
fact
that
human
form
trouble,
infirmity,or
lost. it
was
But God
then
even
love
s
that
do
we
not
this
created
in its
and We perfection of motion power. do not think in the days of ease and of God prosperity, and of worldly triumphs. ings blessWe the do receive not the hand of God; for we think it is as coming from all of these out to have perfectly natural "good things," withIt is only when a thought of gratitude to the Giver.
our
open not
when man
he
enjoy
to
power
eyes
they even
knows
are
to
in
cursing not
the
and
to us,
comes
robs
usof
the
these
uncommon
an
disaster
begin, perhaps, to gifts, that we created. It is inquire why we are so God thing to find humanity blaming trouble. God
love
It
when of
the
in
is
not
disease
Father,
to
uncommon
he
and knows
pain. not
find
Aye, God's
120
god's
wisdom and
hath
God
would
penalty
But
we
life,that
think, and to
to
wisdom
voice
of conscience
says,
No.
or
Can
loving,
more
decreed
he
says, No. conceive
is.
of
No;
The
organization marvelous,
than
God,
sufficient
says,
physical anything more
of
we
ourselves.
is not
God
as
responsible
This
hand
the
from
he
thinks
think
to
for
**man
later.
or
happiness,
caring
that
works
good
not
are
of
capable
so
we
we
youth,
our
own
our
both
to
created
in
perfect right
a
act; that
are
But
for
created
we
has
himself"
unto
as
but
one,
any Divine
act
that
step aside from follow, sooner
we
have
we
know
must
were
is,subject
workmanship,
but
we
works
we
he
as
My
are
when
evil
of
believe
own
"Ye
that
healing
just
Did
realize
the
our
said,
works."
good
unto we
him
creating pleasure.
ill
pain
of
laws
the
fact
that
bodies His to become designed these temples, to be be controlled Spirit, that the joy of God by His might in the body of man? made manifest love! Oh, wonderful
He
Let
look, for
us
deal.
to
We
say
and
moment,
one
is
God
that
with
see
whom
have
we
cient, omnis-
love; omnipotent,
Is it possible that be free omnipresent. we can from weakness, fears, helplessness, and by faith in our who the power of God, designed that His light and love inhabit these and temples? Spirit should in the flesh, save has Jesus No come man can say that to have by the Holy Ghost. Aye, but saving faith is to that
say of
has
Jesus
flesh.
our
lies the
herein
and
Godliness;
in
come
is the
This
manifestation
mystery
of the
love
and
dom wis-
of God.
of God." in
bring God is the
"For
the
More and
power
into
and
form
Jesus.
wonderful
love
The
personal
Christ
in
that
Scriptures declare
The
ever-present are
was
nature
and
marvelous love
Jesus, through
ye said, I will
of God
of
the
dwell
His
is the
God,
power
manifested character to
bodies,
spirits and
our
"Christ
us
that
and
Himself,
enables
Holy
in
them;
ing reveal-
this
is the Him
to
love
combined
the
Spirit, the
walk
of
than
representative of both Father temple of the living God; as in them,
in
Ghost,
^of
who
and. Son. God and
hatbl I will
122
god's
"walk
may
in
have
such
well
knowing
death
the
the
Oh, in
the
that
that
save
who
will
accept
we
up that
die,
must
divine
the
Our
life.
the
of
which it up ends in
the
the
will; and
in
will
be
must
hath
been
flesh.
yielded
only
and
and
makes
receive
to
flesh;
for
hath
been
Spirit find
this
We
flesh. be
find
we
then
we
sin, and
to
self-will
divine
Praise
Sin
died
life
the
sinful
life.
God
self-will
this
our
life in
sin.
to
have
We
a
in
our
asks
which
its
in,
give
passions
that
up,
enter
sinless
desire
the
of
may condemned
is up His receive
forever
death
men
to
**lose
this
love
yield
was
all
of
human
must
Son
give
and
our
will
life He
But
divine
cancel
can
life.
is all.
the
darkness,
others, to
eternal
life, the
from
man
willing
are
we
God
of
of
Saviour
of
gain
we
sinful
natural
and
we
When
destroyed by
Father
sin
that
the
self-will, that
our
The
free.
it,"
death."
that
giving
became
and
that can power His earthly gave
Jesus
In
sin;
destruction
that
power is but one
for
wisdom
one
salvation
the
the
cancel
can
must
disease
redemption
life.
life.
find
be
desires, may us
for
may
give
to
He
His
selT-life
up our life that us
and
in
the
that
death.
from
glorified of God;
the
We
desire
no
second
and
there
is
that
man
love
power is but
right;
is
is
there
is **the
for
there
death, and
life to
Son
light."
the
consequences after that, in
the
one
light;
is and
wrong, cancel
His
of
is but
There
and
and
mystery
giving
sin!
terrible
its
is in
that
body first, and and body, which
soul
both
of
He
sin
of
healing
of
light, as
horror
a
to
the
laws
life
yield God!
unto
it
condemned alive
are
unto
righteousness. Oh,
the
us,
to
and
we
see
may
our
this
moment
love;
die
Spirit of in
and have
for
and
power
of His
Christ life
Spirit the
known
Jesus
enter
that
hath
first time the
feel
"God
we
know
pleasures
of
salvation
that
the
nature.
cast
love." we
what human
out,
is the
This
The
are
love
work No
life than
man's
sins
in.
in
does
divine
his
i^
entered
planning
into
come
sin, and
unto
in
wisdom
partakers awakening can
himself
feel the
of God
become
wonderful
more
wisdom
It is His
for man! in
wonderful
and ifestation man-
very
filled with is.
Man
aflections; he
have
may
he
but it from
the
in
has
character, and
hearts
eternal
with
Jesus
is
received It
the
Spirit," for realizes
only passed
have
"we
good
of
in
with
we
our
love will
make
sacred
of
nature
that
know
we
to
them
that
love
a
The
soul;
ous glori-
presence, that brings
ones.
our
diiSicult
we
divine
a
have
we
Ghost.
Holy be
them
foolish
not
implanted
would
after
love
sions; pas-
received
has
he
only power love everybody;
We
we
sacrifices,but
is
It
is the
love.
love;
true
a
wise
God.
of
human
of
power until love
known
never
hand
123
BODY.
strength and
the
known
AND
SOUL
SPIRIT,
FOR
realize
how
we
He
why death
from
evil
or
tell
to
in
came
life,^'All
unto
is made
**born
are
known
to
the
of
flesh,
the
that-man
him
through
his
unconscious of hatred body, thvough feelingf. We are until until We of anger have feltit unconscious we are until We unconscious of mercy hsLYefelt anger. we are unconscious of sin until have felt merciful. We we are feel pleasWe ures we hayefelt tlie effects of sin in our body. the in is and the it and flesh; nervous pains through indeed We that feels both and evil. man good are system made. And how fearfully and wonderfully thoughtlessly abuse this temple of God! We and misuse are we say we broken
nervous,
why, and seek by traditional and sin
and
ignorantly
never
considering
much
abuse
"go, and
sickness
and
"Enough," in
on
go
wrecked This is too way,
and
destroy reveal
still shut
our
disastrous
and
ruined.
wonderful
body must
God
live
these
Himself
our
nerves, unto
own
when man?
the
must
the
desire How
God
has not
and
conscience, system
nervous
intelligence
But
we
so
of
until
life.
just
voice
way,
destroyed through to
when
only and
come,
own
hath
the
of
our
go
will,
pain, weakness, and said, spoken
back
power
of
to
power
bear
can
And
die.
or
and
come,
we
often
the
"reaction''
more,"
desires
the
process us
or
system*' of drugging
nervous
so
out
carry that
before no
the
up
how
consider
not
begin the deadly poisons to give
and
more,
do
to "tone
and
remedies,
using
sin
etc., but
down,
within to
can
have we
is
ourselves our
own
recklessly
to designed them this knowing mystery
"od's
YiA:
God,
of
think
we
they
this
life.
"For
But
what
profiteth
God
within
God
of
We
is
love
very
through
speaks in
that
Christ
He
of
brain
declare
can
wisdom
the
of tried
has which
many
We
it?
condemned does
not
of
will
'T
if
be
may
we
is
the
that
God.
we
and
in
we
may must
God's
heaven,"
to
receive
unto
you of
flesh
our
demn con-
God.
condemning
manifested
flesh, He
Sin
go
of and
our
does
know
die
we
again
come
How
would
words
in
come
and
us
"when
birth
new
God
flesh
that
say
The
love
the
The
knowledge,
our
between
by stands
beliefs, laws,
flesh.
our
it to
is
Man
God
of
theories,
the
By
himself
for
Word
Jesus
in
standing
says,
Myself." tlie
sin
in
Jesus
but
spirit,
as
God."
broken."
be
their
when
bringing
is
what
Word
men
ually-quick spirit-
it.
of
plans
the
not
can
know
By
"
be
But
all
condemns
He
know
**oracles
"
dogmas. that
The
know
we
devise
to
saved.
broken
be
become
we
Scripture
may
love, for
ways
be
may
"The
men
again
all
to
well
as
passion com-
He
when
despair.
intellect,
His
and
pity
children,
and
and
God's
Spirit
in
he
sure.
sin
that
and
same
far
temple.
"
us,
sinners,
to
be
God.
recognizes We
in
the
the
may His
body
obedient
His
condition
whatever
with
spoke
as
us,
the
feel
or
education,
our
dwells
love
our
which
is in
Jesus
hear
or
theology,
our
God."
living
see
of
of
pleasures
the
not
God of
the
of
can
God
of
stirring
with
man
The
the
God
know
may
if
reveal
to
temple
the
temple?
the
healing
only
are
it
creeds,
our
of
are
ye
the
but
away;
laws
sin, that here
and
now.
Let may
but
condemn the
mn
"
This
sin. His in
ourselves
yield
us
in
you,
the
power
is God's
wonderful
flesh,
our
very
of
by
wonderful
Spirit, hope
into
His
glory."
hands
the not
sin,
some
which
love, wonderful
man
His
God,
of
not
has
that few
a
the
sins,
desire
wonderful salvation
He
to
light, "
"Christ
II.
LECTURE
THE
Jesus
said,
"And
when
Him,
"Who
sent
His
as
that
of
about,
the
touch
touched
as
many
30.
and
diseased;
were
only
:
round
country
might
they
and
that
5
knowledge
had
place
all
Him
that
garment;
all
into
Mark
clothes?"
that
of
TOUCH.
LIVING
My
men
unto
Him
THE
touched
out
brought
besought
OF
the
they
and
POWER
hem
made
were
of fectly per-
whole." God
has
himself
of
constituted
so
he
doctrine
theory
or
only,
gives
reveal
the
alone,
for
nature; Our
after
declares
the
has
no
does
the
in
not
of
trinity
a
of
man
divine
Our
image,
and man
the
spirit
time
This its
action,
body
God
was
9
wonderful reveals
a
to
living
its
the
nostrils
soul,
The
act,
or
the
of
breath
soul
(125)
of
power
dust
it
and
nature, the
man
of
his
think,
The
through
except
in
formed into
breathed became
so
of
God
of
is dead."
body
speak,
move,
we
spirit,
the
our
and
spirit
Word
The
existence,
no
"The
says,
Lord."
how
know
to
20:27
in
ignored
so
desire
our
the
of
Every in
have
we
in
intelligence,
Man's
thought. and
make
Prov.
"without
intelligent
life,
that
and
candle
spirit.
ground,
is
man
physical
it
as
reflection
a
Us
and
man,
for
;
is
"Let
diseased?
spirit. by
and
spirit
health,
that
body
so
said,
are
is
man
is
God
this
for we
the
body,
is
search
of
nature
us
mental
the
any
cal physi-
the
to
likeness."
What
why
and
Therefore
confines
to
or
his
of
trinity
that
knowledge
a
Creator.
knowledge
true
no
spirit, soul
belief
or
organization
his
know
not
can
without
that
man
is
the of the
126
god's
result God
breathe
will
look
into
the
life.
of
the
breathed the
and
is
lungs
and
life.
no
expels
and
them; holds
babe
breath
the
there
into
It is the
Again
and
again
established.
God
has
breathed
God
has
has
a
do
space
moment,
is
repeated
living
soul.
this
"breath the
first
the and
lungs again
until
life is
child
breath
the
life," which
of
body
presses com-
God
re-enters
the
that
crying
which
of
man
"the
"
the
anatomists]
What
do
the
mothers
of the
mystery
of lies"
but
turn
he
body. to
and
*the
has
if the
lungs
they
fifteen
of
airwere
"would hundred
and
nurses
tors doc-
of life?
breath
"God
says, human
of the
made
You
must
wisdom
mistake
a
of
in
never
trust
this
world.'
tell
that unless bandage you you close one-fourth to of these tight enough up air-cells will have misshapen body; a you the natural restore never shape without
doctor;
mother
unnecessary for God
small
the
into
lungs,
of life, that
the
wisdom,
His
breath
the
the
spread [say
father
creation
constructed
out
this
with
"The
can
will
aid."
man's
also, must
babe,
The And
soon
as
female, And
so
the
as
until have
never
body
of
a
into
into
without
of the compass the to receive air,
feet/'
square
the
breathed
in
and
cover
Call
air
this
with
breathed
contained
opened
to
the
marvelously
so
He
which
the
act
ing breath-
of God"?
temple
cells
a
do
we
has
Himself
God
become
do
what
And
do
it has
life, and
of
The
air,
We
recognition
God's
of
life; for
breath
the
the
of
the
then
it.
expels
result
does
it is ushered
moment very its first cry,
for
cry?
body
fear
we
cry
the
the
The
listen
we
Why
into
babe.
the
world
healing
How spirit and the body. wonderful spirit into the body?
this at
of
of the
union
of the
laws
victim
it is old
one-half a
and work
nurse
of
the
"too
it is
air-cells
tight to laced
tight,
closed,
are
breathe."
or
she
if
a
will
form. and
deforming
its birth, until of
bandaged enough,
of the
fashionable
doctor
terrible from
be
"wisdom
mother and
all
combine
defiling the
human
becomes a a woman many world" of this weak a "
to
less helpand
X
FOR
SOUL
SPIRIT,
127
BODY.
AND
wretched
wife, unfit for either marriage or maternity, man-tiater," a useless "butterflyof fashion," or an
**a
inmate
of
an
of fashion
and
asylum, to which she was sent by the demons ignorance, which controlled her.
Mothers, will you
think?
Be
sure
will
doctors
your
think
not
for you before you think for yourselves. what What of the record of this **breath of life" ?
And has
use
his
of this natural
made
man
physical lil'e? What
is.the work
in spiritas manifested wonderful body? Truly
of this
of God intelligence dust of the ground maii*s body, and breath of life by which he becomes the
and
of the Divine
work
Into
breathes
into it the
creative
yielded this spirit,the
God
has
wonderful
of that most
power
It is
livingsoul."
**a
of the circulation of the blood, the power power the food of to-daybecomes livingtissue to-morrow the
of the
forms
Chemist
control
man's
He
when
by which through
of all
secretions,
the
gastricjuice,upon whioh depends all digestion and that *'the blood-making and organic life. Remember blood is the life," and contains, in liquid form, all the substances of the body the nerves, bones, skin, flesh, "
hair, nails, etc.,etc. And
our
We
ignore the
we
Him
from
turn
for
yet
and
of God
laws
concerning
this manage and pleasures.
strive
to
selfish purposes own live for self. If we have
organization
interest in
an
is involved in it. We person, self-happiness is intrusted wonderful that this spiritin man that at death
and of
life with
our
to
and
youth
to the
speaks of marriage
of
desires and
human
life's
and
they
Do
go
the
altar
and intellectually physically,
the duties and
/
the
without
speaks
to the
sin.
It
thoughtful speaks to the
says, "Be
but,
happiness,overpower to
is involved
of evil and
marry."
teachingsof what
It
it?
warns
woman;
other think
never
of conscience
altar,and
you
and
man
and
any
to us of God, carrying the record
Him, heed
we
at the
whom
to
voice
to age,
woman
and
conscience and
The
it.
of life.
in the breath
child,
it returns
and
us,
God
often, the
too
constitutes voice
morally
marriage
of conscience,
sanction
the
of
unfit to enter
of married responsibilities
self-
life.
God; upon
128
god's
Man's
"the
body struck by the if we harmony,
"
If the in
and
will
that the
them,
and
separates
the
in
revealed
self and
the
and
deaths
knowledge acquires
physical
sense
babe
it, and
reach
gratify break
the
laugh
forty
out
are
for or
obtained
comes
wood,
at
simple
physical
and
life^
in character.
What
senses.
we
constitutes
upon,
us
first
After
for it.
child
seeing,the
; then
outside
wants
of
to
desires
and
see
feel
to
the
its
like."
babe
the
feet distant
this
God
have
all.
its
the
as
it sounds
We
body
the
will playthings, and other watch, looking-glass or any object, by another or striking it against object, to hear
dropping "what
ego,
the
the knowledge through of touch, taste, smell, hearing and seeing. and feet away, tries to bright light many
cries
well
as
/, the
is triune
reason
of
spirit is
it revealed
and
feeling by touch
its
inside
in
a
sees
The
the
work
individualizes
spirit and
through
any
destroy.'*
the
see
is the
man
"If
God
which
soul
of
think, with
child
The
that
Has
mind is
we
us,
the
soul.
The
and
hear,
worldly
The
is the
us,
shall
another.
The
"
of God.
love
him
Whatever
manifestation
Its farst see,
soul?
intellect.
myselfy the
from
one
is the
What
life.
or
Creator.
more
man,
divine
the
to
the love of strings have will respond to the touch, The divinity, of love. more the music, and exquisite more
perfectly it will reveal defile the temple of God, man look And around truly, as we destruction everywhere. The physical organization is the
when
"
these
the
instrument,
strings"
vibrate
must our
strike
forth
tbousand
a
know
instrument
sound
the
perfect
of
hand,
would
healing
of
barp
divine
hands
God
laws
from of
way
things
it,but
reaching
intellectual
we
And
touch; the
for
the
spiritonly.
from
physical resistance,
water,
etc.; for all sensation
as
of
all
we
are
object
an we
know
still reaching
reach
never
can
for
out
learned
welmve
beginning.
which
through
for
through the things of the Spirit The phj^sical touch
when touch
we
touch is the
stone,
result
of
touch is realized degrees of resistance; and mental through seeing, speaking, reading, writing, etc.; while various
GOD*S
130
according
or
Jesus
said, "Ye
through
we
the
are
takes realize
Word
the
make
manifested
of
of any
minds
our
of
truth) un-
condition
bodies.
And
that do
we
the
that
believe
We
strange
or
effect
none
(to reveal
disease.
of
question
of
of
evidence
greater
ever
helpless victims
God
of
No
was
the
possession
hypnotisms
creeds?
senses
in
than
and
education,
tradition."
your the
of
power
and
tt"ALlKG
OF
man's
to
schools
customs,
LAWS
not
responsibility in the matter; or that God calls upon life to of our to give an account us Him. It is His have Spirit that gives us life; but what with it? done Do we body as His we recognize our The Do live for God, or for ourselves? body temple? we will life until know and have we righteousness never disease received the living touch of God and see as righteousness unthat
have
we
sin.
and The
touch
physical
intellectual
spiritual
touch
touch
faith
the
in
power
carries
the
natural
touch
without body physical organization condition
God-like We
of your
spirit
the
it the
Is
is the
spirit of Does
spirit? "
the
touch
Where
body
dead."
is
some
the
others.
persons, of
is the
spirit?
or
of
Back
the
What
touch.
it touch
the
ual spirit-
and
with
from
towards man?
of
spirit;the
faith; and
contact
shrink
and
drawn
are
*The
the
in
come
is it?
what
"
intellectual
it the
with
touch natural
it the
We
We
of
power with
startled,
are
hand.
The
carries
carries
God.
of
and their
any
with
is
living,
a
touch? know
the
record
the
of
world's
the
life;how
men
all
land
another in the to-day are touching one great political questions of the hour, trying to overpower other each the and by the spirit of mental physical social and life are all swayed touch. Religious, business Back is the the of mental, by touch. physical touch which is more subtle. We and see more powerful, and feel something forth the Back of that from come eye. look that thinks and is a soul will spirit and a power, over
desires
and
depths of mentally,
wills the
to
rule.
subtlety
unconscious
of that
We a
can
mental it is
a
never
touch.
living
fathom We force
the touch
and
be-
FOR
comes
active
an
which
by
power
touch.
Ijow
she
she
is."
and
conditions. The
e
What
do
what?
to
of
form
physical, mental never
is then
blended
acquainted
controls
mystery teach
of
his
is
creation,
before He
others, spiritual things.
moved; emotional
intellect, but
of
the
of
the we
great
feel.
emotional
nature
it is the
peace,
act?
We
We
the he
affects
The
Spirit
spirit,and Therefore, He
himself. in
Spirit," and
own
powers througli which
and
joy
spiritual, which
the
know
must
the
marvelous
with
fills
and
us
spiritual life of another. our except through us, and the intellect body.
God,
"in
states, feelings
and
with
know
to
sensitive
"How
mental
To
"
very
spiritual and upon the expression, "Oh,
mean?
we
The
touch.
touch
touches
of God
or
hear
is
third
man,
based
often
this intellectual
through th
is
easily affected, and or dejection and unrest,
mind
The
is!"
Sensitive
with
us
We
131
BODY.
life of another.
the
think
we
intellectual
touchy
in
power
AND
SOUL
SPIRIT,
must
be
intellect, with
the
can
know
himself,
understand
must
the
sympathetic nervous tem, sysof ing beof feeling; speak but
nature; think
it
is
how
does
through
the the
the nerves spirit which plays upon for call them; of emotion. Nerves of sympathy, we man, in his worldly wisdom, has to portions some given names God's of which **the temple, inspiration of the were wisdom. The act Almighty's" sympathetic nerves that these the it is through through spirit;and nerves world touch to-day. When moves we great sympathetic and it is through the another, spiritual, intellectual one intellectually-gifted people, physical life. When among catch the spirit of their thoughts, and they touch us we with them feel in and intellects, through our harmony we intellectually. Again we find others who incapable of arousing our are We feel that we "in symintellects not harmoniously. are pathy" And the same law is true with of the spirthem. itual do we feel? souls. We feel between How harmony in the God of sympathy physical body. nerves through constructed body (His temple) so that we might feel our
god's
132
in
Him
nerve-life
of
heart
appealed sympathy.
man
love
its
through sins
heart,
to-day
feel the
We
give
say we heart?
spirit;and We
life.
yield
according
to
another
playing upon yield without
in
another,
we
laid
have
We
and
have
we
holds
will, but
not
have
says, first
the
is
that
the
obey
subtle
he
the
lost
that
deceitful
above
know
hearts
it?'*
round
all And
that
about
the
and
does are
is inflexible and
power
yield ourselvesi
had
He that the
of
God. that
desperately feel
answering
that to
no
We
head.
intellectual head
and
our
thought. and
Satan,
to
And *'the
the
cord, re-
heart
is
wicked
;
the
human
this
to
is deceitful,
to
his
says,
spoke
intellect,
been
not
man
the
voice
this, has
things, us
a
souls, who
is wrong, first to
yielded
who
will
head.
the
to
enslaved
man
to
determined
is
to
us
it;
Another
and
will
of
spoken suggestions of
day
blessed,
taken
heart;" while
is
of
has
stubborn
true
enemy
All
consciousness
from
can
The
God,
firm
a
A
thine
appealed
fall of man,
We
of God.
give Me
become
bodies
will,
enables
love
heart. of
not
spiritsand In
"Son,
parents,
over
power
the
to
be
to
or
ourselves.
over
while
which
thy head."
me
our
self
heart.
the
another
self-will.
unyielding,
possession over in righteousness "Give
strong
a
and
power
stubborn
a
and
God
will,
our
longer bondage.
should
We
in
of yielding it,or the wisdom it. When yield to the will of we knowing the results of so doing.
no
in
us
down
evil,
in
wisdom
our
and
soul.
destroyed
be
to
man's
of
do we Why say the life, the sympathetic of spiritto the sympathy to play upon our power
the
it either
the
another.
our
another
give
we
love
The
But
"
purity both good
fallen
of
is
yield
we
love.
the
the
one
heart
heart?
its "fall," and
feel
represents
to
all manifestations
the
before
we
awakening
the
when
another,
it
feel
we
is
clouded
hearts
Because
"
say
What
spiritand
first our
We
action
have
birthright
the
both
great sympathetic through love; for love
''spiritin man,"
soul
that
so
The
to
heart.
the
sympathetic
the
of
in
natural
is the
is love.
is
appeals through of
healing
of
God
for
body,
our
laws
Word
who
of
FOR
God?
SPIRIT,
SOUL
We
lent, from
outward
right and
honest
Sinner's
enough Again
Chart.
Saint's
Chart.
In
We
nature.
Jesus
it
we
the
see
overcome
life, He
'*That
say, we
see
see
the
my divine
character of the
And He power. sinful heart. own
and
courage
of his did
know
not
love
of God's
all who
to
was
the
saw
soul; and
shall
my
the
from
body
ourselves, God
life for
of
He
Just
only
that
We
of
the
pleasing God own my I noted
the
the
man
know
in
deliver
was
my me
honest
with
with
truth
one
of
life;
this us gave His purposes
He
what
are
way. to look
moved
principles way
unto
The
of
attribute
the
saw
of
anything
natural God
as
We
of
we
we can
are
not
ourselves
we
heart
is not
it.
helpless, to
powers
sin, every
sees
until
the the
which
that
the so
seek
**way, and
teach
the
even
will
it. govern life unless
that
when seen upon and sick when me, I
the
teach
eternal
image
teach not
can
not
life, he
on
selects
enriched;
of
way can
We
can
heart, and every
the
which
b6
may
works
and
science;
or
mind
know
life."
the
art,
his
Work
know.
conscious show
to
standard
not
here; and
us
this
and
why
edge knowl-
a
I
the
know
to
same
heart.
are
God,
organization;
mechanics,
desires
truth, and do
want
it, the
seeks, intellectually, standard
man
teachers, he
we
with
rection resur-
us.
as
when
this
placed
mathematics, best
When
honest
then
"Who
out,
death?*'
be
will
made
why
form;
will
we
cried
of this
We
another.
why
heart
and
search-light I saw myself
Then
the
saw
He
and
also,
worldly, cold, unjust, untruthful I unmerciful, unwilling, unthankful.
I
but
resist
to
man,
it.
divine
meekness.
death
until
upon
See
the
receive
to
gave
heart.
Satan,
within His
heart, See
of
by
of
heart"?
of
heart
will
heart
own my thrown
standards
is
the
judge
we
deceitful
the
know
we
attributes
gave
benevo-
do
or
world's
the
from
to
it is,
as
in the wilderness tempted and spiritual courage power all temptation. And by
was
the
I
heart
the
133
BODY.
good, kind-hearted,
is
appearances; Would wrong?
and
be
had
he
say of man, etc., but do we see
AND
look
into
darkness
there.
that
swayed
power
134
GOD*S
;
life
the
evil
for
written
had moved
to
Book
"
out
that
wilfulness, the
with
little
so
pride,
Chart), I
of God
Word I had
about.
After
etc.
(see Sinner's
list
agreed
I knew
HEALING
OP
anger, the long
if it
see
LAWS
been
was
^the
"
I
one
taught
it,
for historically and theologically, as being of great value 1 the future life; but had been God taught that never had I for this present life. given me a perfect standard searched tlie Scriptures, and found God saitl had what
about
found
it there,
with
ness,
its
list
the that
of
of
man
has
And
looked
at
there
no
death.
death
doing
that
the
manifest
of
with
of
souls
around
me
the
is it that this
with
and
did
not
perfect
then
I
do
that
I
sin
Is
that
with
sin
lead
I
saw
know
anger, and death.
the
children
the
saw
death.
to
might
with
filled was
He
it.
end?
organization ; and was being used to
gave,
qualities
I
myself.
death.
to
O
me,
the
be
saw
physical
God
that
know
me
is to
doomed
the
yet ofiTend
out, "Search
showed
**What
was
to
law,
I cried
For
that
I
enslaved.
man
powerless their
All
pride.
life
long,
and
destructive
will be
right, but men,
in
those the
saw
work
found in
"Why
out:
all."
of
said:
its
through
recorded
whole
the
me
I
covetous-
and
heart,
were
so
sin, until
knew
of God,
him?"
keep guilty
I
true.
was
I went
sinful
cried
soul
escape?"
breath
the
of
searched
of
way
it
manner
attributes
life, and
my
in like
before
was
He
came
I
is
that
spirit,"in the Word I found penalty.
darkness
life open shall
point, he wrong-doing
God."
and
my
in
one
all
the
the
And
been
"Whosoever in
of
books.
of
of
attributes
one
standard
with
penalty;
the
every
Book
heart
my
for "bitterness
I searched and
felt in
and
anger,
jealousy, But
of
and
God
is
merciful. He from
who
hath
sin.
The
of stead and
the for
sinful curse
Son
of
and His
us,
hath
God
flesh," that of
sin.
That
me.
temptation place to lay
created
trial head.
He
wonderful "
provided manifested
was
He bore
And
curse
all that
of
of escape "the ness likein
sin
withstood
nature
forty days
way in
receive
might that
a
without man
food, could
man's
for you every and no
put upon
the
in
Him,
man's
for
tried; but
tempt
Him
was
this?
Is it
anything
years,
until
I
"Come me
and
tl)e
penalties make
heart, and could.
give
take
away
in
clean
me
and
He
said,
Could
He
of conscience,
remorse
He
Could
He
sight?
"Lord, I give my
for
m6
Chart,"
rest."
you
His
to
sin.
of
sins?
all these
of
''Sinner's
to
of all
what
nothing
attributes
will
He
I cried,
Then
its I
Could
rest?
give
with
suflfered devise
And
not.
was
spirit,that
in
and
Me,
unto
failed
He
could
Satan
i/otfc? It
to
saw,
filled
myself
saw
that
Everything
distress, He
and
persecution
of
way sake.
135
BOl!)Y.
AND
SOUL
SHRIT,
FOR
heart
take
said
unto
my He
Thee."
I felt the And glorious Spirit was given to me. heart of Jesus love, thrilling with great sympathetic throughout my entire spirit,soul and body. that creation And that the object of our I realized was and sacrifice of the unspeakable might know we power, His
And
love,
the
in
manifested
as
sinless
life of Jesus, and
become
believes of God, the Word Any soul who shall that believe, lay "they that can prove If by the hands the sick, and on they shall recover." natural touch the of hands flows and rest healing from how much body and spirit of man, greater the healing God's when Holy Spirit has taken possession of *'the power that His Spirit spirit in man;" and we have the knowledge and that Jesus is in us, the to do did; moves things us life that He led. The to lead the same light self-sacrificing the light of our of God's love becomes soul; the strength "the of His of Spirit, the strength of our spirit;and peace which controls the God, passeth all understanding," The whole Spirit of God we trolling connature; and fed at rest the spirit of man, the mind and transforms body, like
Him.
unto
.
.
until
This of
is eternal
the
will
have
and
the
we
that
"we
of
of sickness
and
of
health we
have of
mystery sin.
sin
no
our
but
and
"born
death
came
the
God,"
of
world,
the
with
destruction
have
"children
are
or
As
/eftthis love,
of God, say
flesh,
life.
and
we
of life,"comes
"newness we
of the
longer
no
that
realize
we
.
and
again."
(enslavement
physical life),so, strength. And
awakened creation.
responsibility"
are
to
a
No
in
with when
knowledge longer can question
the
god's
136
done
has
God
given
all
healing
of
that
love
Book"
**The
us
laws
do
can
record
the
for of
He
man.
the
laws
has life.
of
"
Have The from
we
spirit,
it
Ghost
will
Holy within,
appeals "God
rejected
and
Love,"
soul
and
and
body.
we
teach
to
and
love
alone
taught
were
all
us
appeals
without,
from is
because
things;
touches
for
hearts,
our
leaves
incorrectly?
the
leaches
while
heart
the
He
heart,
man
untouched.
and
saves
god's
138
soul
both
laws
Father
the
of
and
healing
the
Again, Jesus says, is expedient for you
Son.
I tell you the truth; it Comforter for if I go the not away, away; the words These of unto you." were
"Nevertheless that
I go
not
come
When
life; for
our
they
thought? thoughts
"
received his
Jesus
life."
are
Are
Thought of to-day
into
is
the
the
are
decided
and
our
revelation
result in
upon
condemnation
own
Jesus.
thoughts they become words said, "My they are Spirit and What is to-day living that life? we
them
receive
we
will
past.
his
or
mind.
own
Man's
which
thoughts
of
the
of
he
has
Man
pronounces justification from
through speech. proclaim whether to to enjoy life, health, strength, and are or we peace, and evil speaking. suffer the penalty of idle thinking is language? What It is the symbol of our thoughts. is the expression of the soul, and Thought our thoughts controlled If the thoughts by our spiritual condition. are Our
thoughts
words
"
evil, the
are
of
the
heart
in
his
heart,
heart
is
evil, because
the
mouth
of
"out
^'As
speaketh."
the
abundance thinketh
man
a
is he."
so
heart Our thinking in our to-day? thoughts are presented to us through the physical senses There of sight, hearing, etc. that thoughts are many thoughts that are life-giving. death-dealing, and many are how know Do find to weigh our thoughts, that we may we life and health and We strength and joy and peace? What
are
the
know
we
terrible
brings pain,
the
of
power and sorrow,
imagine in
imagination; and
strange
But
darkness. to
foolish often
is too
real
ailments
many
the
us
as
born
continually." thought that
of
the Gen.
w^hich
the
that
entire
have
physical life. We foundation, except
no
slights and wrongs; manj" for the things are imagined, imagination of ignorance, prejudice, and spiritual many
whatever
if true;
imagination
often
soul, by controlling the agony circulation the of the blood, the
the
of
which
of
heart, respiration of the lungs, and
action
imagination,
we
for
God
has
thoughts
of
said his
There
6:5. must
falsely think
ever
find
of
to
true
that
man,
heart
was
is
the
in
be
expression.
is
as
"every
only
evil of
nature
In
some
FOB
the
way
is
man
of
power
they
in
to
both
soul
and
of
paralysis
the
know
We
prejudice,
make
the
bring thoughts
We
know
"
lines
of
care
faces, with
our
of wrong thinking. the of at which, thoughts
the
and
and
true
as
marked
as
mind
thought image and
Every Every
form
takes
Peter
body.
the
image, is thought
Ananias,
of
moment, out
be "
future, full
the
long
a
if
education
what
And
ever.
of
before
time
"the for
wisdom our
and
of fear we
of of
the
truly, The
sorrow
the
or
over
through
5:4.
or
ceived con-
But the
saying
the
present
to
picture
that
it will
sanctified
these What
of the
man.
thou
intellect
of
that
its power. heart, and
hast
saved
in
deeply, as ulty facimaging
itself
world"?
What
are
as
stop with
education
children?
we
upon
which
the
in
torment,
this
do,
To-day
itself; for
Acts
healed
are
of
we
life
"Why
heart?" thing in thine the do not imaginations but the imagination uses
as
foundation
expresses
this effects
of
conceived
intellect, and asked
false.
power its character, and
its
the
in
think
we
wonderful
is its most has
victims
had
they
destroy health, or even think which falsely governs us as we really true. profoundly, as if it were the
we
are
evil
of the
fact, often
of
sponding corre-
Such
moment, if
the
and
imagination, appeared as real
Shocks
as
eveii
jealousy,
frames,
trembling
result
the
evil
birth.
marks
brows;
our upon weak and
their and
sickness, and
and
they give the life,until verily thoughts control and disease despair, not knowing why the power of our true thoughts or nor have
the
anguish
feel
indigestion,
which
to
; for
Oh,
what
nerve
every
sorrow
forth
tliought.
body.. of pride, enmity,
power
to
liis
hendache,
whole
shadowed
or
terribly destructive of suspense take Thoughts
body.
appetite, and effects; they produce
139
BODY.
their
and
heart,
the
the
away
AND
thoughts expressed are continually giving out the thoughts of suspense!
cause
power
SOUL
SPIRIT,
tions imaginaof
this
results?
intellectually through images of mind. Its religious education foolishly permit to be made we of angelic illustrations false, pictorial biblical through The
life
as
child
the
builds
resijlt of
death,
and
of
such
false
and
foolish
CiOD's
V^
songs
"I
as
want
be
to
of untruthful power childish mind and
falsehood
LAWS
OF
HEALING
angel,"
an
ideal
to
songs
fill the
Do
etc.
implant
error
with
the
soul
young
realize
we
the the
in seeds
of
how we are spiritual death ? Do we think these that minds educating so readily are grasping young receiving life-long impressions of truth or error, upon their Were satisfied "sensitive plates" of thought? we with such instructions? What the are impressions we make children's of on our thoughts of God, of truth, and efface every alone love, which justice,of mercy can of and false Are they thought teaching? past error these wonderful, receiving these true impressions, or are attributes Man lost sight of? glorious, divine lays down the laws for our makes the laws to govern being. Man His laws and of life. ignoring the great Lawgiver man, ment commandWe Jesus' of laws disregard the great law and
"
tliat
**ye love
another."
one
We
make
laws
the
of
and
imaginary justice,to decide for the happiness of another and laws of by unequal unjust marriage, And and etc. divorce, property rights, by laws, customs, decide social another's etiquette we morality or upon another's of immorality; spirituality; spiritualityor want lack another's of intellectuality. intellectualityor in There is but one who created us Lawgiver, the One the only law His of His own us being image, and gave ignorance
"
the
law
of
will
bring
bondage,
disease
law
divine
body, We
If
day. to
their
we
beliefs. If
infidels, and and
we
beliefs?
our
not
must
others death.
the
in
the
"
of
belief
our
dominion
By
the
spirit, and
beliefs
Word
the with
they into and
of
are our
the
of
our
subject
are
we
ants, Catliolics, Protest-
"belief is subject to
our
balance"
wanting, necessarily bring sorrow i)ain and found
parents,
children
are
heathen,
under
come
they "weigh
birth, subject to the
we
violates
death.
Whatever
education.
measure
are
or
and
that
intellect,
man's
of Methodist
born
are
law
human
upon
of
creatures
are
Anv
love.
divine
birth
our
is, it governs
us;
How
we
it. of Word
If
only. of
true; if not life and
may
God
the
disappointment
God
and
true, they lives and
of
final
We is
say
we
but
decide
may
ready
ever
decide
to
it is and
thoughts faitl),our
Do
law, that and
be
shall
alone
who
make
us
faith, creed, school believe
are
so
social
or
beliefs
God, free
indeed. of the
What
of
for
interpretation; ordained
and
be
not
We will We
think
under
dissimilar
smile
laws
Chinese
modes
manners,
woman
can
and
they who 10
of doctrine, as
by our political these
in
last turn
and
makes
the
of
we
no
to us
interpretations private
Holy
Ghost,
Holy Ghost, it shall is the Holy Ghost decide against the
the we
consequences; find it in
never
another
for
if
error.
and
another All
different
customs;
agree
whether
refinement.
eating,
not
at
the
and
laws
and
laugh
truth
at
the
of
Scriptures.
the
one
of
do
culture and
we
upon
social
The
of
or
admit
as
bear
of education
others
when
constitutes
A
the
truth
a
thought, governed by what society think judge and we accordingly. sit at the table of etiquette,and we
of and
different
have
truth,
us,
ideas
our
far
so
must
judgment
pass
meets
of
the
because
In
creatures
are
are
and
the
is in
freedom
saves
with
His
medicine,
and
world?
against
him;"
"Spirit of Truth." we Spirit of Truth
the
wrote
speaketh
forgiven
that
filled
men
of God,
"Whosoever
love
them
Scriptures
The
man?
and
are
from
turn
of
God
form
of
our
ficiency, self-suf-
our
governed theological, medical, faith by one, as our
one
methods
school
selves our-
with
body? the
our
unto
violate
or
We
our
the
of
can
soul
or
upon
in
we,
nature
soul
law,
reveals
He
with
satisfied
as as
the
Whatever
we
"Myself" ment, self-judg-
sufficient
God
free.
in
satisfied
creed,
our
But
shaken,
and
Is
governed.
we
systems.
are
?
or
of
141
mysdf,
"
we
spirit
beliefs
everchanging
Are
human
in
BODY.
passeth judgment
know
we no
free
be well
beliefs.
our
are?
God
and
God
AND
for ourselves
judge of truth philosophy,
to
divine
SOUL
SPIRIT,
"OB.
with
ways still we
our
views
nations of
ing, dress-
judge as
to
and what
look We at the breeding. and peculiar quaint customs ishness. fooland at our folly, pride
good their
laugh
claimed
to
be
an
earnest
Christian,
once
gob's
Va
remonstrated told
feet, and of her
the
a
Chinese
her
that
it
The
healino
sinful, and
was
her
the
of
feet,but
her
deformed
stood and
laughed,
waist
compressed only pinched
about
woman
woman
the
she
of
with
salvation.
to
that
laws
way
quietly pointing
"Christian," the
the
in
answered
Christian
pinched
lifeitself knows
the
and
waist
believes
who
Any woman her body,
will
the
not
she
has God.
of
herself
the
of
the
right If
deform
to
she
compresses action of her
deprives and ruins, forever, the "cradle lungs digestive organs, in the results of maternity,^' she will the future of reap and her sinful And she live to see acts. thoughts may the of only to her cruelty not own being, but to that of pride, vanity, folly and that others; and thoughts free
and
fashion When
we
wav,
learn will
we
The
great
And
only as wisely. Why
us
the
were
that
guide
for
know
we
do
power foolish
we
upon thought finds
every
careful
be
of
our
foundation
what
stand
feeling
wq
is
and
nature
in
she
built.
expression in
some
think
thought the
which
love. of
the
way acting, and
"God
God of
is
can
we
who
God,
say,
"Let
love."
.love gave have
me
The thinking? girl is way my young she deceived she thinks because tmsts foolishly, because There and hardened believes in a heart against God. are and at physical organism, against our war strong powers life. intellectual and spiritual our Do realize think do? know Do we we as we why we the that the of to-day acts to give birth tlioughts and Whatever the thoughts will be thougl its of to-morrow? the week hence of this thoughts a depend may upon hour. of the future will depend Thoughts upon verj^ Shall receive the or thoughts of the present. reject we whose is love? the Creator, name thoughts of our very the Would spirit of we separate the spirit of justice from own
love?
separate
or
separate all the
of
mercy divine
spirit of with
love? the
faith
and
and
truth
from
love?
Would
we
pity, gentleness, tenderness, kindness,
attributes The
wisdom
divine
laws
that
are
of God of love.
born
of
love, from
is revealed
in
the
ance accord-
Thoughts They are
SOUL
SPIRIT,
"OB.
that sway powers characteristics merely
not
but
and
birth
our
implanted
in
soul," carries violate
God
acted
we
the
quiets
point
voice
out
image
of
evil
our
and
we
and
ways,
life, of taints that
but
truth,
the
of God the
and
is
we
fallen
ever
us
state
with
back
to
us,
into
of
one
and
forebodings,
stand
God's
of
"
leads
fills
soul
every
would
we
have
speak
not
falsehood.
the us
natures
two
us,
the
to
us
We
truth, for
where in
also carry laws of our
the
disease.
of
and
wnthin
enemy who
soul
"the
"
"
one
prince
of
with
fear and suspense, of other worship gods,
death.
and
in disease
results
love
war,
the
air"
and
ourselves
is at
We
concerning
blood
of
justify
of the
power
which
when
us
his
conscience.
world
it is to
there
know
We
a
falsehood, when
in
bring
to
against
wars
what
known
has
first
He
living thcmght We
tells
which
than
with more us carry false teachings of the
nature
"became
Man
conscience,
likeness,"
likeness.
physical a
stamp
of God^%
know."
being.
life" that
of
we
the
mere
our
and
which
told
nor
in
image
conscience
for
We the
of
first lie, "we
forces
lives.
our
mind
'breath
divine
wrong, ; when
laws
s
the
The
virtue
it the
do
we
man
move
of
Our
iu
Him.
by
us,
with
when
know
is in
and
living
are
powers, "Let Us create said,
143
BODY.
the
are
intellectual God
AND
but has not taught us much, taught us of the the Holy Ghost, or that immortality is in power that of this power is born of truth is the truth. Thought God himself; but thought that is born unchangeable as as Truth is immortal. is vacillating and of error changeable. world
The
Jesus
thee,
unto
in
the
said Ye
grave? is born
which
that
but
has
Will
we
door
of
our
The
the
is born the
hearts,
and
of
the
say spirit,and
great commandment
will
which
:
"Lord,
guide are
my born
is, "Thou
death
I
man
hath
soul
us
That
perish; everlasting life.
Will come
said
lays
of salvation."
Spirit Spirit now?
of
of
born
and
flesh
of my forth thoughts
possession I voice
of
that
not
When
again." is the day
born
"Now
No.
"
"Marvel
Nicodemus, be
must
which be
to
must
we
open in, and and
will
the take until
of love"? shalt
love
the
Lord
ood's
\^\
thy God strength,
we
How
are
hear
My
him,
and
will
filled
with
again
the
Look
the
we
Pilate; Jesus *'healed
Jesus
the
exceed
shall ye doctrine
If
Jesus
no
the
save
and
the
the
children. comes
from
across
the
Do
realize
we
Do
God?
floor, that
we
is
we
within
spirit
cried
it will
be
me
spirit
Sinners
do
and
Pharisees, No
transform
can
able
tell
to
in
filled with
be
will
His
even
as
Do
us? that
God
lost the
glad
gifts to His perfect gift
and
good
"the
walk
we we
think, them
opens
power
to
open
I
my eyes, when, my I Then taught my was rendered of fright had the
Lazarus;
of heaven."
that
once
Jesus
youth, was leading a worjdly life. God. The dependence on power incapable of raising the eyeme lids. that Then of moment anguish thing someturned thoughts to God; and my my
in
Oh,
we
spirit alone moves in the morning, I
before
of heaven.
every
realize
over
righteousness
your scribes
gracious
that
our eyes open I realized it when for us? as
be
and
is
than
that
love.
of Jesus
Jesus,
of
of we
kingdom
kingdom
Spirit
Ghost,'* "joy in the Holy others. God tidings" to
the
live
Jesus
tomb
we
of the
doctrine
simple
fit it for
receive
we
into
Has
Magdalene;
Have
said, "Except
enter
case
there
spirit
your and
See
the
at
his
Have
you Saviour?
the
Mary
those
righteousness
is in
perfect character
to
for
that
obey
Me."
feel
Calvary.
and sacrifice
the
in
heart
the
all;" Jesus
But
same.
shall
them
spake
hearts?
have
world.
he
We
us?
the
to
when
Gethsemane
at
within
given
ever
was
love
our
God
spirit,until
other
no
may,
of
you Redeemer?
blessed
in
with
he
until
God,
we
says, "If any I will come in to
heart, and
your
and
Can
of
door,
heart
soul
Jesus
and
your
of
of
life of the
where
Jesus
who
love
him,
loving
great
possession
taken
the
and
can:
love
love?
open
with sup the door of
opened you enthroned the
the
get this
to
we
soul
until
voice, and
man
He
human
no may, love of
commandment heart.
healing
and mind thy heart thy neighbor as thyself/' with jealous, angry thoughts
and
what
Say
of
all
with
another
one
laws
unto
through
Him:
Thy
"Lord, power
and
if
ever
I
open
goodness.*'
my eyes I realized
146
god's
soul
who
has
has
father
world.
can
say,
heart
know
can
declare
can
in
with
As
the
when
are
shall
they His
the
into
and
of
"all
when
man
for
love
for
when
of
forth
disease."
awaken
to
steel,
so
and
Creator
the
by
faith
is the
one
from
Love,
man's
only,
we
words
on
the
heals
of
sick,
and feel God and
manifested
healing touch,
who
one
love;
an
the
hands
lay
with
God's
such
of
healing;
is
of
Spirit
the
it
in of
power
"
goes
alone
awakened
is
love,
we
human
Jes^is
by love
the
joy.
shall
Truly
not
No
given
of
presence of
love;
strange
message
the
**They
Spirit manner
the
recover."
"
own
Godlike
Ghost,
power
creation
God's
Holy
realized:
then
this
magnetizes
come
Spirit
heart
glad
he
soul."
The
His
same
magnet
we
when with
the
with
filled
the
Then forth
go
another
is
it
we
us,
or
it.
but
and
liuman
every
feel
of
only,
new
that
realize
newness
child,
or
love
I it
say
and
something
is
It
**I
wife
will
Spirit,
life,
of
or
healing
the
of
newness
mother
or
whole
"born
been
into
come
of
laws
for and
the
saves.
cure
LECTURE
THE
BONDAGE
OP
IV.
FEAR.
THE
"
POWER
OP
THOUGHT,
CONTINUED.
**Let seemeth
be
to
he
that
be
their
knoweth
have
might
from the
the
and
the
realize of
that
disease,
that
for
are
of
seek
of self
become
and
evil, man
in
all
basis
of
the
that
intellect
are
ever
reason.
that
self
desires. and
is
the
to
God's
yet
there
find
be
character
and in
wisdom
evil,
and
system,
or
thoughts
born
God.
of
It
is
We
natural
reason
originate
governed of
we
and
health
of
we
the
As
between
must
ourselves
we
source
self-opinionated,
self, permitting
So
in
of
world,
nervous
distinguish those
birth
and the
of
that
darkness.
continual
to
Spirit
our
of
and
the
upon a
of
and
good
light
error,
tliought
will
we
for
We
self.
The
of
intellect
decide
and
sin.
we
shown
character;
of
the
somewhat
thoughts
of
blending
a
virtue
18-21.
how
have
have
His
thoughts
thoughts
born
are
The to
effect
that
heart,
same
by
:
"
of
We
rests,
of
born
are
man.
thoughts
truth
ignorance, the
to
there
wisdom;
to-day,
that
vain.
3
thought
of
Lord
are
Cor.
1
the
The
they
men."
is
taketh
again, that
origin
thoughts
somewhat
world's
intellect
the
of
God,
in
glory
world
He
written,
wise,
you
fool,
a
this
of
And
the
of
man
heart of
is
among become
him
wisdom
craftiness.
natural
human
within
learn
no
those
wisdom,
the
it
spoken
image
rests
For
distinguish
God, in
God.
thoughts
lot
We
the
man
any
let
world,
For
own
the
Therefore
this
If
wise.
with
in
himself.
in
wise
may
foolishness wise
deceive
man
no
the
(147)
for ries theo-
thereby. heart;
for
GOD^S
148
out
of the
heart
proceedeth its
to according worldly, proud, thoughts of an
the upon the blood,
organic
evil
vain evil
action
HEALING
thoughts
An
nature.
nerve-lifeof the
OP
LAWS
or
and
forth
give thoughts
those
heart, the
hardened,
will
heart
influencing
man,
of the
evil-inclined,
selfish
character,
good thoughts,
or
the
play
circulation
system
nervous
of and
life.
We of creatures continually thinking. are of desires that born of impulsive thought; creatures are learn that self; and thought, by a law of its as we every the wisdom of creation, is expressed in some we see way, thinking wisely. For either through the physical organism, in music, mechanism, language, science, or or art, In the take form. of some thoughts thoughts every way but but It may be soul find an a expression. impulse, of time, it is thought, but often, in an instant momentary For instance, under an impulse to do a certain expressed. make the movement forward; a thing, we start and instant draw next back, and changed we say, "I have my We
are
mind." eye fastens it alone.
We
see
upon The
article
an
it
we
think
on
the
either
floor; the to
take
it up
the
moment or
to
leave
the physthought is brought to bear upon ical find in ourselves we organization, and moving to thought. response muscle and AH the day long the body and nerve every We constantly in motion, responding to thought are say, think I to "I have please," not recognizing as perfect right a if think that divine law, wrongly we must we sarily necesa the penalty of wrong thinking, which pay may death. We have result in disease no right to think as or is limited to right thinking, right of man please. The we created law God's divine is righteous thinking; for "God God's that in His image, and design was our own man the likeness of God's should thoughts. thoughts represent and this revelation reveals His God must Spirit to man, intellect. and the heart be through health and belief that It is a common strength and life This of God. thought leads to death. independent are his Creator, to rely from himself. It leads man upon away
FOR
depend
to
soul
the
"the
upon
AND
SOUL
SPIRIT,
wisdom
149
BODY.
this world"
of
health
for
ol
body. dient acting. Every disobeWrong thinking produces wrong fills the heart and of God the Word thought toward intellect with We become fear. world-fearing peoa ple. The The and in fear is of spirit us us. spirit upon and
of fear The
has
dominion
firstfear
the
words
man
If
become
but
also
will
of
in
would
obedient
unto
We thought. is concerning only in His
God
of Christ,
we
as
be
know We
us.
wisdom
what
that
life and
rests
to
fear, heart,
perfect
the
know
must
in
only
not
"
fear.
and
sin
free from
God
must
involves
disobedience
sin, from
from
came
of God.
must
we
of
all sin
life,as
the
over
mind and
peace
strength. worldly thought is the spiritof self. We of God say/'My religion," notwithstanding the Word forth Lord holds but one and religion the religion of our Jesus Saviour Christ. hear We the expression, **My The
great
of
power
"
There
faith."
Wrong life.
is but
will
thinking is "my
It
produce
ever
creed,"
belief;" yet the
of
God
"my
We
hear
whom
school
of "my
etc.
We
place
believe
we
have
of medical
all my
thoughts
are
"
the If
in
the
my
controlled
of
another's
faith
world,
of
which find
experiment, and
I
power
is foolishness we
are
and
not so
with
satisfied turn
to
fession," prothose
pathic, school; if homeothat belief; if eclectic
belief; "the
lost in
am
of
that
by
thought, of another's
another.
"my
to
thoughts are subject to accordingly. magnetic, I am governed
We
of
satisfy this "my profession is allopathic,
wisdom
my
the
**my
religion
practice"
ourselves
faith," *'my practice," etc.
slave
daily
and
faith" the
proclaims
in
only.
Jesus
or
God."
of
living
wrong
church,"
"my
voice
faith, '*the faith
true
one
I
become
a
a
servant
of
wisdom
of
the
God." with
one
school but
of medical
disappointed, dom seeking in worldly wishave nothing that we
another;
we
are
turn, ever again we for something to satisfy. We which for that satisfies to-day is depend upon, can and we ever looking for something are to-morrow, life's disappointments. to meet
gone new
GOD^S
150
Out
Cometh
of sin
controls
Fear
fear, and Tins the
the
he
fear
he
world,
in
its action
forms
and
paralysis the
that
of, and with
fear.
of the
heart,
nervous
filled
blanches
with
which
'"godly fear,"
and
the
are
in
fear, and
paths
Sudden
unrest
death.
physical
our
or
power? terrible feelings
the feel
life?
enemy's
this
God
that
of
secret
true
fear
pride!
of
disease
produces
Pride
torts dis-
and
has
saken forin
life is
a
is love.
is involved
Pride
the
of
cheek
the
We
suspense. realizing that the
not
us,
is
"
features, gives indigestion
heart
fears
Fear, by fear. organization, produces all in diseases ending
frequently results in immediate in Is fear doing its deadly work for relief from are we looking to God Fear and all know produces suspense, a
He
circulation
The
fear.
nerve-life
whole
fear
of
godly
a
it not.
seeks
with
controlled
are
Fear
death.
is
the
physical and
is filled
He
saves
he
and
the upon functional
of
fear
hearts.
their
into
to-day.
man
bedient diso-
became
parents
entered
himself,
constantly quivering blood, the action
of
not
fears
first
fear
only
knows
HEALING
Our
and
heart
the
yet
OF
fear.
God,
unto
LAWS
in
How
leading mis-
her
subtle
how vital
every
pride.
in
forces!
These
organ.
eases dis-
and worldly wisdom through the diseases that (?),not understanding worldly remedies oi pride can be destroyed until pride is taken the from not Pride leads foolish heart. to colds, coughs, exposures, Pride of etc. life, pride of possessions, consumption, all lead ease dissinful of to fashions, to physical form, pride seek
we
and
death.
pride.
We
for the
sake
false
to
go of
ambition,
involved
eradicate
whole
Man's
mental
beyond our pride, and which
become
carries
us
in
Even
"superstition." of ignorance, controls though we we are say
rules
the
born
comes
of
most
of
us.
life and
The
superstition, which
and
powers
the to
is filled
heart
unhappy
with
strength victims
destruction.
Fear
of is
superstitious thought, and physical life. us our "Christians," superstition fate of impending feeling plays a strong part in our The
life. We
are
afraid
to
start
on
a
journey
on
a
certain
day of
FOR
the
week
SOUL
SPIRIT,
AND
fear of disaster.
for
of accidents,
and
look
We
ahead
tortured
are
dread
in
151
BODY.
of
by
them.
the
fear
We
are
constantly looking for "signs" Singing before breakfast, of hands, wearing of certain gems, picking up of crossing of sharp instruments, pins, giving presents etc., fill us with
fear
and
the
various
their
affect
the
of
beads
is
gold and ivory against evil spirits,and amber We that
fear
riares
of
to
the
of
'*one
vent pre-
carrying
from
of
number result
any
also
of
in
die
evil
worn
beads
will
form
off
to
thirteen
with
eat
mind
the
appearance
and
blood,
the
body
keep
to
of
crescent
of
on
healthfully. coral
wear
circulation
organs
functions
We
the
at
as
ward the
before
disease
disease
The
"charm"
a
off
las. erysipe-
table, for fear
the and
is
year
death.
the
on
spirits.
body
out."
The tortures
rash harmless to thought, from most deadly contagion. eruption All of the above of earthly origin and thoughts are from fear. The destroys life. The come spirit of haste spiritof anger, envy, or jealousy, affects organic life. The is swayed of the emotional nature by thought. great power of the muscles Notice the facial expression, the change of the of surprise, or face fear, or during moments grief the muscles That which takes of the face in also place the under takes of impulse place in the vital organs, emotion. and aid circulation, thought Joy will restore health and bring life and strength, while digestion, and have fear will of sadness just the opposite thoughts or all of these of evil war effect, and against the body powers
through
us
and
of the
soul True
of
thev
words are
are
born I
that
life."
If
of
speak the
the unto
words
Spirit
of
you, of Jesus
they
God.
are
Jesus
are
spirit,
life (and
only the outward expression of thoughts), then be life. We the must are separated thoughts of Jesus world's We have this God from to thoughts. through He thine learn God's "Son, give Me thought when says, I will "Give Man heart." thy head, and me ever says, teach to receive realizing that the power even you," never
words
are
\
man.
thoughts
said, "The and
of
images
the
the
\
\
QOD*S
\^^
LAWS
OF
HEALING
from spiritual force, for knowledge comes The wisdom of God thought is itself a spiritual force. wisdom is revealed of man is through the Spirit. The intellect. We the acquired through seeking health are lead and unto everlasting strength and thoughts that filled with life. The mind the thoughts of Jesus of was Himself He held within eternal God, and immortality life. the words of Jesus of Why lifegiving? Back were
intellectual
"
"
words
the we
Jesus
of the
the
was
words
life
of
heart the
heart
speak partakes of the **nature*' and The yielding of the heart unto to
heart
Then
heart, transformed
the with
God,
the
filled with Jesus
light, and
healed
natural filled assumed
They
with
faith
in
the
distrust.
we
rise
never
can
would
be
used
with the
and
the
to
power risen
has
to
a
live
His
faith
and
life. trust
of life.
secret
love
the
body
sin
disease.
living God. The thoughts higher
in
The are
and
self-
than
self
of God
It
of
becomes
and
believe in and must we grace, God. It is not to say that enough belief True belief. in Jesus is a
of
our
of Jesus.
self, self-reasoning, self-exaltation,
belief
our
man
divine
and
Jesus,
glory, given over
can
until
is the
His
to
with
They power. self. If die with
by nature
is filled
heart
God
filled
is power trusted He
because
of
Never
character
and
"eye single"
Jesus.
of
ing heal-
for receive
the
Jesus
is my knowledge of is
only
God
when
that
we
trusted absolutely in God, and Spirit. Jesus His free therefore from the world. He thoughts were but created, in the Creator never put faith in anything faith in the Creator. must rest turn Why only. Our Him and from organic life by following try to maintain receive
the
the
wisdom
the
soul, but
use
of
death We do
in
only learned "Thou
to
that word
the the
hear the
nature
shalt
created is
"nature"
deal
great
physical the
We
is the say He the body, and
foolishness
with
Creator the
God,
of very and
physical organization. a
creative
world?
the
of
life.
power, true
have
source a
the
about When
"nature" we
learn
and
what
it will
that
Spirit is the have intelligence, we
only true of organic life. God's perfect and just weight,
Word a
says. and
perfect
154
god's
it in Me
He
wisdom.
thine
heart,
spoken
who
He
in
obey God. provide for
us
faith, that
His have
we
and
there
will
Jesus
will
heart
the
he
that
called
God
faith"
body
ham, Abraand
that
God
will
trust
we
"
God
believe
might
proceed be
Jesus.
of
conscious
**Abrahamic
spirit,soul
"
says, "Give the human
in
of
When
man.
He
heart
words
very
of
him
gave If
the
possession of of the Spirit are
Healer
is the
when way is enthroned
of
The
born
are
Himself
can
all
Him.
to
Heathenism
Jewish
to Baal-zebub
know
appealed (2 Kings
to
wooden
and
God; and
taught
not
we
From
healing througli James
In
let
5:14
call
him
the the
natural
disease
for
to whom
elders
obedient
unto
for
Why
we
will
do of
temple
with
defile
temple
When
the
enemy
He for
of he
church,
the
man.
when
the
left
us
body.
knew
with
only
do
we
whom for
had
the
doctrine
control
religion not
that
over
for the the
church
a
meaning
no
what
to
as
defile
man
any
church
healing,
for
find
devices
own
took
ye
of
name
is the
God
of
"If
a
them
No, but
"
where
Word
he
**Know
the
destroy.'* Do subject it to drug
soul
the
in
sick, for
are
you?
among let
and
God
we
been
ever
"
our
shall
oil
But
body?
the him
God,
the
from
left to
we
are
has
appeal to-day
the
dience. obe-
and
prayer
church?
Where
Has
God?
superstition been
ever
to ascertain physician remedy (?). When we
faitli.
oil?
ent disobedi-
have
sick
we
the
could
we
with
anointing us?
lost
we
God
church,
with
the
prescribe
God
from
strayed the
and
prophets,
became
any
the
the
"
false
to
faith."
of
causes"
The
there
"Is
of
elders
it.
through
of
elders
the
for
of
'-god
the
believe
of heathen
of
anointing him alas, to-day when
But
send?
we
followers
told:
are
drug
or
Abraham
prayer
we
for
him,
over pray the Lord.''
do
*'the
of
tliey
health
of
doctrine
idols,
children
for
call
the
:
The
God
to
turn
it,
3), when
to-day
are
idolatry.
to
1
the
of
source
does
Man
nation
to
the
was
medication.
or
God
those
by
Those
When
life.
of
words
the
us
abundance
the
of
healing
of
points
heart."
out
laws
we
of
the not
poisons? healing
the
life of
ing soul, noth-
body
is the
FOR
temple
for,
the
in
face
health
soul
the
that
the
the
index
what
and
he
does!
image.
living
sacrifice,
will
we
the
be
no
God
subject
of
sick
drug
safely
place
and
the
are
it
turn
have
strayed,
in
through
the
spake life
will
divine
His when
Him
physicians
peace
to
life
and
give
every
peace.
offers soul is
that
disease
is
bod}',
our
world
of
the
hands
Pain
for
and
law
of
and
health,
is
God.
will
follow
and
death.
He
lived
His
Me." the
poisoned
binds
spake. He
into
and
we
voiced
which
that man
ourselves
and
where
ask
*'Follow
were,
ness sick-
warning
Thought is
never
as
and
God's
is
God,
of
thinking
pain
deed.
drugged
be
Jesus
thinking
Wrong is
to
words we
upon? and
and
a
which
the
wrong
Religion
spake
Jesus
that
or
body.
others.
for
follow the
God.
to
man
thought
body
of
men.
of
living
the
to
and
soul
feel
Him
out
of
expressions we
the
poisons.
body
hands
God,
ways
of
from
your
give
we
of
thinks
fallen
unto
the
our
the
When will
we
in
by
take
outward
w^rong-doing. voice,
if
longer
not
can
And
of
origin
man
"Present
say,
to
the
surely
most
have
us
representative what
acceptable
service."
treatment
We
liave
and
the
the
our
question
this
reveals
Scriptures
holy
reasonable
your
but
which
to
of
know
us
our
marked
many on
of
is
body
We
The
divine
few
finger
"
how
reasoning
is
according
destruction
see
Alas,
How
body
our
will,
we
We
man's
disease.
and
disease,
of
think
as
mankind.
victims and
for
care
155
BODY.
We
desires.
all
of
the
been
to
and
thoughts
own
AND
God?"
living
decide
to
own
the
of
SOUL
SPIRIT,
and
strength,
Do
we
hands
of
mented experiand
joy,
Him.
Right
thinking
LECTURE
V.
CREATION.
In
Ps.
90
threescore
God
life, that
we
Is
time
of
is
universe
creation.
sounded
has
his
creation.
the
striven
deptlis
of
the
sought,
in
dissecting
does
or
two,
and
and
subject gas
been hand
God
and
(156)
but in
or
he
He
done.
reconstruct
of
but
solid;
created;
heat
to
the
subtle
can
has
the
can
substances
not
but
not
he
prehend com-
find
tlie and
He
create. are
made
the
(water)
its
subtle
"
tions, propor-
fluid
change
what
gases
unites
that the
capacity
two
their
and
from
that
how^
body,
give
take
not
has
anatomical
of
force
can
recombine he
will
cold,
the
He
can
composed
he
Man
water.
it
it is
which to
forms
or
and
He
"
find
not
can
is
heavens,
spirit.
"
water
hydrogen
he
but
the
force
that
prove
and
vital
the
discover
his
of
live.
by
into
the
conditions we
the
to
knows
He
why
or
the
see
can
oxygen
how
The
comprehend
body,
a
Every
knowledge.
human
pathological
know
Man
the
of
is
descended
for
seeking
limit
expressed
into
and
for
action.
as
looked
ocean,
created.
are
and
not
into
earth,
we
structure
the
in
to
ages
has
the
wisdom.
God
of
for He
of
bowels
why
revelation
the
Man of
mystery
is
natural
Creation
God,
of
and
allotted
realize
divine
expression
labor
has
wisely?
the
strength
man's
He
to
time of
of
of
are
years
strength
that
wise
our
reason
their
time
our
an
by
record
not
expression
second
and
it
use
may
momentary
entire
the
out
here.
is the
gives
measures
if
yet
of
days
and
ten;
Bible
remain
to
''The
years,
Tlie
life. us
and
fourscore
sorrow."
read:
we
years
be
they
10
:
nature
force
by
intelligence has
searches
already for
manifest;
the but
IfOB,
loses the
IPIRIT,
sight of the subtle intelligence,and the
them
this
; for
force
God's When
God
the
stamp
cell
know
thfe nature
of
man's
body
to Eerfect with all
other
armony
define
nucleus
which
nucleolus two
the
From
the
the
whole
it
of
our
cell
one
body.
To
look
no
two
Even
who
stand
the
of
motion
the
the
them.
These
from
but
soul the
of
in
as
at
your cells ever
these
protoplasm.
or
the
life of the
radiates
also
the
From
cell radiates
being
by
names
From
nucleus.
covering,
iologists Phys-
nucleolus,
the
are
a
in
work
another.
the
has
body.
of
or
life
our
and
So in body. physical body, the construction
the
flesh, you touch
would
think another.
one
is
"
of
is in
proving motion
even
senses;
as
the for it
still.
is true
This
origin
cell must
"
to
of magnetic
created
the physical science through X-ray cell Each the non-solidity of man's body. too rapid for detection by the sight of man, motion earth's is not recognized by man's seems
and
involved
are
their
of
each
the
is manifested
law
solid, but
was
of
"
divine
the
of the
likeness,
talk
know
composing composed
outer
spirit through
our
Yet
life of
the
life of the
construction
same
as
things.
perfect trinity, and
a
portion
one
center very the center
From
from
"
cells
all
prehend com-
wonderful We
we
not
and
most
of God
protoplasm.
is evolved
comes
cell.
the
separate
we
is
cells
these
and
that
for itself.
do
this
on
his
beyond
of
image
own
life,
combines
can
force
nothing
we
work
the
His
know
we
man
handiwork.
of God's
but
creation,
Every
in
and
man
creative
placed
was
to
is the
and
unites
natural
of electric forces
life,and until
the
man,
perfect expression
laws
the
"
created
divine
that
is invisible
Spirit
spirit,which
of
power
157
BODY.
AND
force
because
comprehension,
in
SOUL
the
of cells
result
of
cell
within which
the
life of our
bodies
gives
rise
is
body. something
to
the
entire
name
The derful, won-
netic ''mag-
calls it magnetic force, (spiritforce). Man All talks of healing by '*personal magnetism," and etc. the result touch made the were by human healings ever is the life of all physical force, For God of spirit action. current"
and
if
our
life is commuuiQated 11
to
another
for
healing,it
158
god's
When
in
sick, and
God
and
spirit, or
soul
one
is whatever
to another.
have
we
made
of
us
happy,
It is the
believe
divine
a
is
shall
there
is not
law.
If depressed
affect
we
one
continually passing
spiritual life
our
and
cause recover," it is be-
teaches
will, but
love
of
that
'*
joyous and accordingly. Something
another
laws
they shall
which
command
divine
by the They
Spirit says,
everything
in
from
the
the
on
that a
healing
of
spirit force operating
through sympathy. lay hands is
only
laws
life-giving or
a
"
and
presence,
soul-destroying We
say force. spirit
power. "mesmeric"
and
It is
the
only gives rise
operates, that When
we
drawn
follow
to
magnet,
are
sensitive
to
We
our
those
and
live
who
God
asK
natural
This
word
the
that
think
them,
regardless
secret?
the
know fear We
to
must
trample His are
must
from
digress fear
to
of
Word
says
that
beaten
with
"few
suffer
"many
His
sure,
for
"with
free
His
law
tlie creative His
laws
to
turn
secret
What if and from
But
reject
or
"the
that
fear
must "
accept
So
Laws.
we
laws.
Him."
fear
measure
Grod's decree
God's
said
protect
through destroy.
what
to
God
His
Lord,
of
a
Spirit,
to
to
or
again."
one
that
to
be used
can
you
with of
the
power
heal
of
offend
one
upon
the
learn
to
them
turn
we
to
the
conscious
are
to
penalties.
of
of
secret
when
escape leaves us
knowledge
The
"
He
is with
Lord
the
never
that
we
attraction
escape associate
we
either
stands
can
we
When
we
be measured
many of
in order power, evil influences.
spirit power will
of God
it shall
ye mete is such
only
us, that
protect
"mesmeric"
so-called But
It is
the
their
of
world,
the
are
follows
needle
their
in
only
to
evil.
from
law
the
from
influence.
worldly
as
and
influences
the
companionship.
of evil
dangers
these
spiritforce it.
give
we
possible of spirit compelled by this law wisely, that we companions may
are
choose
name
is all
It
power. this
which
in
another
know
protect ourselves
to
"
to
way the
one
must
we
''magnetic"
is the would
we
Him
obey the
truth.
law, for whenever
we
inevitably suffer. those tliat disobey Him ignorantly stripes." If we disobey wilfully we we
must
stripes"for breaking
the
law
and
for
FOR
violation
the
of
AND
SOUL
SPIRIT,
God
conscieuce.
159
BODY.
"Forgive as you does natural forgiven." The says, '*Why God I will forgive?" God then not first,and forgive me has there is Again already forgiven all through Christ. law: He He not not a forgive us first, because can can would
reach
mind
hearts
our
Never
us.
enter
closed
door
He
while
until
Spirit
in
we
between
ask
do
It is The
moment
ye give ye shall shut we may go When answer.
that
door
knows of his
the
of
the heart
our
from
God.
but
strive
of
the
cells and the
he
and
no
faith''
of
use
ment instru-
an
has
that
are
receive
prayer
only
can
As
mercy. hearts
and
opened
flow
Spirit may healing power.
his
intellect
has
opened
Spirit. cell
of
construction
of
with
until
not
anything
tell
"the
ciful mer-
merciful?
into
the
"
can
other
our
not
"
For being with "they that the sick, and lay hands they shall cover." reon Our spirit,augmented by God's Spirit, will flow lips,our fingers, our body life-givingforce a
from
the
of
God's
life of his very believe shall
Man
we
again
faith
of
be
receive
doors
pray
sick, God that
a
it, and
for
praying becoming
first
we
and
to
law
as
of
Will
the
again
strive
we
is in will
If
God
to
healing
the
the
receive.
stands
plead
tired
merciful
become
we
and
get
secret
question
a
God's
merciful, for they shall
mercy,
of
will
and
can
forgive
to
human
the
are
divine
Him
between
us.
receive; and
not
tliat the
realizing
the
and
again, "Blessed We want mercy."
and
The
us.
God
stands
hearts
our
open
forgive
to
will
our
says
obtain
for
says,
be
result
in
spirit force,
comprehend
to
his
heart will
Physiologists
life
how
"
cells
physical life;
tion, crea-
he
know
tell
of you and form
divide but
they
is evolved
which
from
will
not
can
the
cells
themselves. The
he
must Spirit of Goa his own comprehend can To-day we are all seeking
mind
knows
Almighty from
gives
Qodf
wisdom
no
but
it. is
The
dwarfed
man's
through
act
will
before
creation. for wisdom. until
wisdom
and
the of
Bui
the
inspiration the
crushed
natural and
natural of
the
spirit is held
in
160
god's
laws
of
healixg
pride, selfishness, egotism and folly,until it is incapable of giving man that even gift of "common rare We know that sense." in general have not humanity As of age an example, at twenty years common sense. by
abeyance
a
as
for
care
I did
mother,
affection
first child. my for it, yet all
laws
God's
have
not
and
I had the
it not,
knew
common a
sufficient
sense
selfish
mother's
while
I
because
worked I had
love
to
and
contrary
to
wisdom
of
no
Spirit.
the
how
dren chilcruelly we our wrong in infancy and childhood, by not having common Think how Mother Wiuslow's Soothing Syrup or sense. for sin other stimulants opiates and lay the foundation and in our sorrow helpless infants, by stifling the very have brain life and We checking the physical growth. of education, We not common sense. only creatures are destitute are following, like flocks of sheep, leaders who as It often
wisdom
of
to
occurs
as
me,
ourselves.
of age at five years wanting pitifulto see children the cigarette;at ten, the lager beer; andat fifteen, theexcitemothers their of the ment gambling table; all because their food lacked in preparing m common infancy sense and and taste childhood, destroyed their natural by the In every of unnatural etc. condiments, phase of life use classes and the thousands high, the low, the middle It is
"
"
have
thousands
Mothers
sense.
been
ruined,
and
fathers
all have
for not
the
want
of
common
common
sense
nor
children from their to educate hood, babymodesty" the in vital questions of most purity, concerning moral and But their physical being. they do have a "false which in them turn modesty" (?) by norance igthey over, be the the in to educated, world, impurity, by the flesh and because the consideration and devil, study the God human "is such cate delithe of body a temple of that their they well know question," notwithstanding and sins their own chiefly from own sufferings came bodies. ignorance or false education concerning their own created "the The human to become body was temple of
"natural
"
"
the
living
God."
If
from
every
pulpit
in
the
land
was
162
GOD*8
His
US
and
sinless
of
We
but
the
love
of
that
love
and
hearts **No
flesh
man
can
it, until love
let divine is the
Lord.
power. or
mental
that
then in
disease.
It
will
the
divine
as
tlie
Spirit
grief
sorrow
of God.
Son
divine we
by
or
That
from
body." law
and
will
take
a
divine
through
kinds
physical
spirit ing Heal-
takes unto
healed
being
of
believe
Healer,
these
All
God. laws
natural
the
by
beli^{f)has
Our
laws
away the
very
ings heal-
spiritthat
of
cell life.
spirit has
natural
the
will When divine care
of
power, of the And
exercises
exercise
the
know
we
year
and
body. yet
touched
been
life of
and
natural
the
the
by
is
man
only,
man
by the Spirit of God, **natural tne through and its nature Spirit and
Himself
reveal
profiteth little." all
natural
like
us
But
pity.
spirit. We may Spiritualist,or Magnetic
character whole Spirit, the changed, and we will no longer be for our quickened spirit has been God
law
natural
divine
and
physical
mental
also
in
difference
first
healing
of
Divine
but
makes
Scientist."
the
with
done
are
When
by
the
of
created.
and
the
the
"Christian
a
little to do
flows
healed
are
that
the
sin
is
by
or
power,
that
above
above
and
body
through and compassion
be
intellect.
the
it is the
the
only the physical body,
not
and
far
as
is
Creator
heals
is
beyond
felt
be
must
say,
never
can
by
and
can
we
operate
physical touch; through
and
stand under-
hearts
our
Love
heal
disease.
it is
flesh, for
spiritmay
natural
and
by the Holy
so
recognized
the
souls
but
moment
intellect, but
soul
it, nor
do
intellect.
and
and
of
we
but
sin
believe doors
pray,
our
Lord,
nor
the
until the
of comprehension the known through through the body, and The Spirit is tested
over
moment
But
the
The
it,
opened The
in.
into
power is the
sin
overcome
plead, the body
save
is received
say
have
we
can
Jesus
not
can
God
that
can
strive,
given
are
say
We
Ghost."
Jesus
we
also
we
reason,
can
When
man.
HEALING
which
Spirit, by
disease.
nothing
OF
LAWS
learn
Paul look
for
bodily
after
year,
to
submit
says, at tlie
"Bodily
God,
He
exercise
gymnasiums
and
You
can
take
will
never
health. and
to
you
get
FOR
SOUL
SPIRIT,
AND
163
BODY.
It is the within. from being defiled same It is that with oflfers not diet, with man anything you. but of the inward life. If you question of the outward a are^ will have His life and strength. For right with God you I tried to keep alive with all kinds months of **nourishing food" everything that humanity could offer. The more the less strength I could walk I had, until I tried not the floor. The made in Spirit of God across me strong The moment. Spirit is easily grieved, so when ceived, reone
well
while
"
it.
keep human of
God,
We
are
or
We love
is
and
the
soon we
is
and
law
of God's discern
try it
are
3
We
7-8.
:
of
become
with
ourselves
of Him
we
confide
in
ye
be
not
Him
into
aside and
will
to our
learn and and
converted
enter
throw
we
and
all
all
"wisdom
the our
then
we
the
the
to
and
grow, merciful in God
voice our
and the
troubles,
strive
the and
He
to
know
Him.
ask
His
advice,
become
as
we
of
^rld,'* and
come
a
our
find child.
confident
a
loves
to
says,
have
us
^'Except
We
shall ye have to
and
all theories
children,
of heaven." kingdom calculating worldliness,
of this
We
make
for He
little
and
all
have
God.
of
we
begin
increases, to
the
feeling
every
simplicity as
are
that
We away. the Spirit.
faith
wisdom
with
and
we
of
feel
We
of
the
Spirit.
for
love.
we
can
into
in
grow
everybody spirit has passed
mankind
tell Him
We
order
disappointment.
in
love
of
talking
end
of
the
grow
little
is that We
little
just
dealings
know
obedience
by by
grow
Little
in
never
Spirit,and
wisdom
children; begin born Spiritual things when
bitterness
or
only
brain
Spirit before
the can
like
world.
all the
of
We
It will
of the
first horn
of envy
we
born
habits.
whose
follow
must
laws,
and
the
receiving
too
we
first be
totally ignorant Spirit. All we
to
of
His
ways
child
the
Word
left stranded.
under
old
Like
spiritual things.
Spirit; don*t
love
child,
and
way
may than
the
to
are
we
own
God?
incapable a
and
we
quickly
more
disobedient
are
our
that
God,
unto
Spirit
gone, His
to
to
while
manhood
John
back
go hearken
development
We
grieve the grieved. We
can
Spirit is compelled to live
we
Will
obedient
become
must
we
humbly
before
164
eOD's
Grod.
We
not
can
OF
LAWS
into
grow
HIALIN"
the
kingdom
but
God
of
must
,
bom
be
into
God
faculties
mental
the
Then
it
His
radiates
and
Spirit
emotional
the
all
through holding
nature "
all
in
the
8ouL
lost
obedience is
love.
in
Ghost
in
Why the
will
find
and
obeying We
as
died Jesus' in
be
My full."
human
a
correct
in
Jesus' it
*'For of
His
in
name,
is
believing
God
good
and
His
and
Jesus'
wise
life,
us
which
He
can
pleasura"
let in
you
law.
in
He it
do
joy
your
may all
might
we
Ask
both
we
prayer answer
our
something Pray
prayers. His to
in
nothing
have our
God
long
have
not
may
answer
to
will.
every
may He
as
we
intelligence.
then
He for
patiently worketh
His
one
asked
ye
that
Spirit,
prayer.
before and
and
were
can
that
came,
we
validity
We
receive,
do
His
have
Jesus
any
valid
will.
shall
ye 24.
to
its
"Hitherto
immediately;
prayers
to
do
be
:
value
no
this
me
and 16
name
will
pray
We
How
Suppose
make
to
says,
ask
Spirit,
Jesus'
and
will?
establishes
death
He
John
His
to
man.
in
wUl.
and
of
alone
you
name;
be
would
death
name.
have in
give
to
His
is
Jesus'
required
It
It
as
Word
His
Bible
the
live,
we
of
earth
to
Holy
according
instead
known
the
us,
power
God
life
believe
will.
our
in
is
Self
God.
that
make
believe
not
Christ
thus
God.
to
Healing
And
love.
of
subdued
us,
Divine
happiest
must
know
is
in
God
have
we
us,
Spirit
will
the
With
faith.
our
and
saved,
divine
the
to
work will
in and
us.
to
LECTURE
THE
In
looking
question "And
health
of
God
Our of
the
cattle,
and
thing
that in
man
His
the
on
In
himself
John
I
and this
of
how
it, and make
in
the
of
natural
spirit" At
were
the
troubled.
"My
the
soul
tomb In
is
to
minion do-
God
words
Lazarus Garden
exceedingly
Thy of
He of
likeness,"
Scripture
represented into
said,
understand
to
the
He
is
and
on
I
we
lost
"Let
Us
we
must
how
man
gives earth
hands
as
the
cord re-
having
commend
My
Saviour. in
groaned Gethsemane
sorrowful,
if
ness, righteous-
where
us
go
but
dominion,
God
Our
The
when
our
tell
I
if
you;
of
the
you
for
And
Since
God
image.
dying the
creepeth
teli
unto
lost
after
of
**Father
of
been
given
away;
go
sin, and
of
regained.
who
spirit.
that
I
you.
comes
image,
His
Son,
He
has
been
come
have
We
nature
in
not
world
God
Our
I
unto
the
be
triune
created
was
Him
from
it may
the
study
send
judgment.'*
man
has
that
you will
reprove
Messenger
created
Man
''Nevertheless
for
Comforter
will
He
read:
we
will
I
depart,
creeping
created
thing
Christ
the
also.
expedient the
away,
come,
a
16:7
it is
truth;
through
God
fish
over
God
them."
creeping
after
the
every
of
27:
26,
image,
So
image He
every
Man
over
great :
over
earth.
the
1
air, and
the
and
created
over
earth.
of
the
in
Our
dominion
earth,
upon
Gen.
to
in
man
have
the
female
and
turn
we
fowl
image,
own
over
not
all
dominion
given
them
the
concerning
make
the
creepeth
male
him;
Us
over
over
wisdom
disease,
let
and
and
sea,
and
LIFE.
OF
for
Let
said,
likeness;
TBINITY
God
to
VI.
spirit, and He
even
unto
(165)
was
declared, death/'
166
god's
said
He
Again, Me."
Jesus
of His
own
of
Himself
being
death/'
came
tlie
that
spirit,or
of
body:
**A
healing
death.
soul,
prepared trinity "With gin
of
the
body.
a
"
sin, therefore, unto
Thou
statement
soul
a
"
hast
body
the
spirit
a
"
leads his
of
makes
With
sickness
laws
disease
came
Was
this
and
sin
all
man's
of
his
What it that body? was "The sinned? Did the serpent serpent did beguile me/* the the soul, or appeal to the spirit,or body, of the in order She It is the listened. to beguile her? woman listens. soul that She the listened, and spirit became enslaved to hear by the soul, no longer having the power and
understand
by
of
soul
earth
and
entered
that
and
can
say, creation?
the
of
did
in
the
the
For
We
"she
in
see
is the
victim
die."
Is Is
of
death
of
God, is
soul
a
who
one a
as
upon
sin.
the
there
there
this
down
sowi, dragging
sight
of
stamp
soul.
the
sinned?
not
"
having the listening came ing takthe body
eat/*
it shall
sinneth,
If not,
shame
through The body
has to-day who I am righteous
the
and
thoughts
thereof
longer
no
With
fear
the
body.
spirit and
"The on
sin
God,
of
body.
with
fruit
first sin, that both
God
act
the
voice
the
to
part took
the
control
to power disobedience
of
or
natural soul
every
only but the soul also. What is the spirit? The spirit is the life,for "without the spirit the The body is dead/' spirit is the life not The only of the body but also of the sonl. spirit holds within itself the life force of the will, intellect and body. Take the spirit,and has no man intelligence, and no away all The of body. spirit is the source organized living body
the
not
"
"
substance, of
nerve
revealer excuses
and
of
nutritive
after
"
the
brain
upon
the
the
and
carrying
of
the of
the
and
spirit
for
life
life of all
on
power spirit is the
The
spirit is body, goes
tions func-
motive
conscience, which
the record it, with gave spirit is the light of the soul
dependent
wisdom, it is the
body.
The
^man.
death
;
man,
and
and
of the
who
are
for
action
and
thought accuses
Godlike
breathing
"
muscle,
and
or
life, and
body
the
digestion of
directs, with
and
controls breath
the back of
the
there
"
to
man.
body. is of
of God The
We man.
FOR
venr
work the
soul
The
of
power
eternal
into
quickened
all
then?
intellect
the
"
^The
ego;
the
will.
and
which
that
man;
What
forever.
dies
life, or
life is the
organized soul
is the is
167
BODY,
individualizes
which
that
is
AND
and
thought of tne spirit. What J" soul The myselL
Our
is
SOUL
SPIRIT,
is
body is organized life, in personal form. the The union of the spirit,reveals the soul. body with into man the breath of life,the spirit,and God breathed he became intellectual, thinking, willan living soul a with have to do. soul is that which The we ing being. life. which soul The is that rejects or accepts the divine sin. The sinneth. The soul is that which not body does It has life, no intelligence, apart from spirit. That no The soul is the God-given sins is the I which I, myself. the
body?
^The
"
"
"
life is not
with What
our
own;
with
do
we
in
the
to
our
we
alone
and
salvation
He
and
body,
so
"
^bythe mankind
they have
is not
loss
or
no
is the
sin.
he
crucifixion
soul
been and
Ask that
life,
of
of
him.
sins?
with
His
knows But
as
will
fell
man "
resurrection
the
"What
What
is
self. him-
and
ease. dis-
weak;
his
how
to
or
soul ^spirit, spirit,soul and "
of Jesus is your
great
save
Holy spirit
of
sin
where
not
redeemed
The
controlling
grapple
until
intellect,
the
creation
of
capable
the
intellect
The
sleep.
has
to
by the world, caring for the body,
strange
large to-day,
answer.
He
sinned.
spiritagainst the of body.
to
He
in
at
source
this
overpowered
has
true
in
the
competent
is sunken
has
of
control
Man
have
Man
silenced
is
is burdened.
go.
"What
created?
educated
control
is not
conscience
Ask
and
the
can
They
the
spirit,and
body.
He
"
Spirit,
intellect
the
Ghost
intellect
longer capable
no
against the continually, for
body
the
has
He
form
very do we
will
What
are
wars
soul
constitutes
is received
spiritis
while
the
them
the
from
world, and his
with
us?
willy this
this
upon turned
breath.
gives
The
responsible.
us
done judged "according to the deeds motives, not according body," not according to our is passed The of God judgment good intentions.
soul; for
the
holds
it is of His
life God
the
God
which
will, for
free
Christ.
soul?"
and
theological world:
is my
soul
that
God
168
god's
wants are
"
save?
to
and
the
the
same,"
giving
or
saved.
**The
lost
it."
gave
The
body
sinneth, it shall has and
no
from
escape
control
world.
of
The The of
Spirit
of the
will
own
will.
of
But
teach
have
also
things
that
soul
has
be
who
He
sin,
recognize but
nature, the
to
intellect
deceived
educated
in
the
not
through first
appeals
to
the
the
is under
sins
we
and
man,
will
the
and
us,
of
the
for
involved
Satan^ and is
"the
may
spiritual darkness,
child
God
is enslaved.
man
He
is to
unto
return
spirit
which
it.
and
senses
God
The
and
soul
of that
dust.
to
returns
its destructive
preach may remain in
it will
is, "Your
answer
knowledge spirit shall
his
comprehend to
healing
op
no
die."
over
power
power We
the
laws
of in
are
ness. darkThe
sensea
senses,
the
to
teach
How
of God.
wonderful! strange! how teach children We our through sight, hearing, feeling, has God teach the first principles of to etc. us tasting, spiritual life through the physical organization, and yet the the great world ing nothbody as having to-day rejects talk with of saving salvation. We the 8(yid to do the breath of the body; while of life,breathed independent his soul. God the into reveals Himself man body, gave of fedunto through the physical body by the sense man soul love except human ever comprehended ing; for no head, mind, no feeling. No intellect, no through ever is It of the of the heart lova We all feelings grasped God soul knows no feel love; and except he feels His love. know His The is moment love, which we feel His love, we the beginning for the soul. The of salvation first thing the soul of salvation is what the knows body has ever first revealed How God to it. does He the body? enter must enters through our spirit We feel him first. God man
"
must
touch
the
conscience,
the
heart, and
the
ness, conscious-
the result is a through the body; and quickened soul" soul. No but longer a "living a quickened soul. only, natural The touch of God's by the spirit quickened edge Spirit, reveals to man knowledge of God, and a knowla of
things
himself. of
God,
From and
lay
that aside
moment
sin
and
we
can
unbelief,
grasp and
the seek
170
god's
disease He
Spirit
and
of
death,
quickened,
all the
disease, is but
or
have
we
the
of the
life of
the
received
it has
is united
but
the
intellect So
true
to
disease this
question
of
but
combat,
mercy
keep My We
God unto
of
power to
understand The
We
of
the
do
the
spirit,soul
have
we
have
given
thousands
His of
from
God,
yielded
sin.
and
body.
know
if
We
we
are
overcome
with
in
inheritances,
many
kinds
of
promise them
the
quently, Spirit. Consethe right when
contend
to
all
is
Spirit will
much
have
We
from
will
is salvation
life of the
We
disease.
that
intellect,when
The
disease, for
wrong. of the
knowledge
a
forever.
power This
the
has
us
and
ened, quick-
do
to
soul
world,
is
longer separated
no
right quickened
weaknesses.
many "show
a
the
longer afraid the Spirit, that of the body.
no
are
the
become
we
has
will
to
of God.
the
intellect fear
a
the
of the
are
the
fear,
see
Father has
and
knows
we
truth, is
the
to
Spirit, the
Son,
and
independent
is not
man
When
reveals
until
But
intellect
godly
a
to
world.
of God.
then
Spirit
we
of the
fears
becomes
fear
and
Father
won
of the
or
fear
no
God's
And
and
recognize that the has warred against sin And the victory. wlien longer afraid are no or
is
which
quickened,
becomes
soul
the
Jesus
Spirit
death,
healing
of
of
power the is
gives
disease
and
to
the
by
laws
that
diseases
that
He
love
Me,
to
will and
commandments.'*
iearn who
to
walk
in
the
Spirit
There
are
some
healthy, or robust, *'but little strength to begin with," and there who those from But the were beginning. are strong those weak that are receive added the strength from may God's fountain of that realize strength, and we so are There have who been only. are some so strong in Him injured through drugs, and the surgeon's knife, that it is of the body to be perimpossible for the functions ever fected God But has and His again. Spirit, given us we that let and God His do Spirit day by day, rely upon can work in the soul in the Let and body. us accept this fears of the fears world, no Spirit, and we will have no of man; love. nothing but godly fear and persons had and
were
never
strong,
or
LECTURE
THE
In
Heb.
things
11
hoped
by
framed
Gen.
2
word
evidence
of
made
4, 5,
:
which the
**.
it
and
heavens,
the
earth,
in
was
."
grew.
the
the
.
this
is
We the
that
and
solid.
to
carbonic
the
hardest
things.
but
of
in is
and acid
it
substance
For
as
to
they
Spirit.
in
Here
gas.
we
its came
"He
its
tion. habita-
creation
kinds, of
one
hardest and
gas
have
In
gaseous,
the
oxygen
from
spake
and
is
same
Spirit,
it
illustration
an
invisible
The
of
creations.
"
form.
struction con-
of
own
the
become
may
breathed
possibilities;
other
diamond,
heat
in
in
three
of
16.
:
formed
in
His
for
all
stance sub-
manifestation
manifested
the
and
highest
and
139
God
and
nature
field
Ps.
flesh?
temple
as
Take
changed
back
its
substance
the
See
marvelous
it is
a
life
man,
substances,
reducible
it
out
spiritual
ground,
it is the "
of
the
in
of
that
as
And
earth
trinity
life
destroyed, all
before
the
of
substance.
of
life.
the
form
physical
physical
burns
all
the
see
dust
it, and
beast
known
wonderful
on
known
before
"And
read,
showing
physical
of
created
fluidic
the
field
field
the
we
every
etc.,"
the
breath
work
His
in
made
tlie
of
of
19
verse
substance,
and for
air,
from
it the
God
herb
every
formed
precede
body
into
the
of
must
man's
Lord
the
fowl
Wliat
God
Lord
are
And
appear/*
plant
every
in
which
.
ground
every
And
were
.
and and
seen."
worlds
things do
of
not
the
that
so
substauce
tilings
of
God,
.
earth
is the
that
things
of
read
we
faith
"Now
understand
we
the not
were
the
for,
SUBSTANCE.
OF
read:
we
faith
"Through
seen
TRINITY
1-3
:
VII.
they it
was
(171)
not
of
true are
all
done."
172
(K)D'b
"God
is
forms
of
these
creation; and
creations of
senses
the
of
man
from
the
trinity
creation
are
take,
and
law
a
the
law
Here
and
from
have
we
in
(as
tree
it
in
see
which
is
to
have
form ashes
and
been gases.
of the
not
law
the
with
same
it to take
We and
we
diamond;
invisible
water
and
steam.
ice, showing
have the
have
an
the
visible
form.
perfect
add
to
it
a
God's
law
result
is
a
its
been
duced re-
it
nas
the
proportion has changed by another created
to
the
tree^
law.
ashes
by
of
Spirit
laws
the
the
but
of
"
law
the
destroyed,
law
violated; the law of attraction the Spirit itself, which force; and has reduced the tree through law
of portion. proresult of
tree,
and
been
stances, sub-
but
changed, The
We
through
substance
the
operation
the
is
the
We
peculiar
the
or
substance
spiritual substance)
and
nature
of the
nature
of
creation.
have we Spirit, is perfectly maintained, the tree, and take But expression of a tree. have thrown aside we foreign force (fire),and the of proportion force, and by adding a new
change
is
in
of
the
structing recon-
Spirit, and
Spirit; all
growth,
of
the
recognize
not
continuous
We
But
forces. profound (or attraction), and
proportion,
blending
harmonious
the
evolved
three
natural
of
When
all
tree.
laws
does
is of
force.
a
he
all
control
can
recombining
resulting in
"
instance,
for
is
one
dynamic
of forces
that
evolvea
which
spiritual
h*eady
that
"substance,"
one,
third, spirit or a
a
fact
sight of chemistry of God. in
be
but
is
Spirit laws
only
delusive
so
substance
loses
Involved
the
creation,
of
of
out
Spirit, must
are
source
call
and
Spirit,"
a
HEALINa
of
laws
It k
have
duced re-
gas.
subject Subject
that
can
high
pressure
of
it to
low
pressure,
and
has
man
He
it to
not
power
create,
only for
to
creation
heat, we
change is
of
take Again, (quicksilver), a Spirit. mercury reduce it to a low and liquid at ordinary temperature, that can substance a solid degree by freezing, and it becomes be handled lead; but raise the temperature sufiiciently, as marvelous and it changes illustration of th" to gas a God
"
"
trinity
of substance.
FOR
Take of No
cells
two
but
are
law
held
place
motion;
yet
essential
to
in
substance The and
in
in
ever
Each
attraction
and
motion.
earth the The
life.
law
of
substance
when
and
all
that
of the
motion
is
the
ceases
is
do
that
body
its
created
is We
creation
tact, con-
in
unconceivably
is in
itself
direct
cell is held
all
by
not
rapid
motion
is
continually the
of
nature
is
changed. physical body
attraction
the
as
Spirit is involved
the
are
construction.
For
it is
motion;
human
form
perfect
most
of attraction.
the
that
the
marvelous
its
at
body separated by Spirit
a
realize
the
of
place by in
look
and
substance,
173
BODY.
organization,
physical
the
AND
SOUL
SPIRIT,
in it differ
the
the
proportion
substance
of
wonderful
so
eye,
substances
the
from
structure
of
perfect
that
see
we
law
same
Take
it.
and in
and
tree, in
its construction,
by the
is held
those
the
of
volved in-
lungs,
of man, but portion of the anatomy held law are by the same are same origin, and in the substances of attraction, perfect proportion with involved. The is self-adjustable to light, but if we eye the force of increase the light sufficiently, it has say the eyesight power to destroy the substance, and we
spine,
other
or
any all of the
is
lost. It is the
firing of
same
with
cannon
a
the
machinery,
the
the
to
or
delicacy
of
destroyed showing of proportion the penalty organization is so constructed the
it, and
upon
law
continuous
hearing
that
noise
may
the
God's
The force
law
nervous
that
it, may
through
acts
heavy injured or
violate
we
that
of
be
follow.
will
close to the
remain
we
whenever
that
"
If
ear.
plays
be that
of
love. Wlien
in
perfect health
painful sensation is proportion attacks that
we
us
and
feel
in
we
the
maintained.
results
God iroportion. When "only earthly] temple" "a living soul," His care
is "added
12
of the
the and
conscious for
the
when taken
or
of
God's
of any law of disease
from," law
His
human love
to
violation
breathed "
not
physical body, It is only
something
the
are
for
of
Spirit into "His and made it body "
man
were
guaranteed
174
god's
forever
his
by
likeness" of the
of
him
shall
many
God
ways
body
when
that
"faith
Whether
aside
swept **if any
for
"in
defiling "the
man
violates
the
And and
of
laws
suffer
must
temple
3:17.
temple"
of
God,
there
are
destroying
God.
the
Paul
things hoped physical things, faith
substance
spiritualthings
in
Cor.
the
hand
the
man
says for."
of
or
the
after
and
when
man,
defile
1
of
the
image And
by
man
destroy."
is
the
Father.
heavenly
is
Creator
healing
op
creation
very
his
penalty;
the
laws
is the
substance. If
hope
we
become
also,
for
the
substance very perfect faith is the
which
hope
we
body.
faith
that
in
turns
and
becomes
the
hoped
human
desires soul
of
and
the
our
physical that
of
substance
is
thing desired, brings forth
for
all
anything,
energy
mechanic.
His
our
trated concen-
until
faith
the
so
is
rise
above
will
bring
he."
s
stand
faith, of
or
The
faith.
between
God.
"As his
While
becomes
is attainable.
of God*
that
powers
faith
believes
he
the suistance
see
heart,
not earthly, he can spiritual, faith are
physical
the and
or
substance, his
the
must
things artist, scientist, acrobat, "tightrope
the
are
in
thinketh
we
be
all
the
revelation
the
truly desire
we
faith
powers, In hope.
must
whatever
of
body
men
for
for
the
at
substance
the
In
law
direction;
performer," athlete verv
this
substance,
very Look
for.
If
itself
exerts
of
Faith
for.
spirit,soul and
the
intellectual
strong,
the a
man
desires
earthly things, but forth spiritual fruits
if in
are
they the
life.
by the faith of becomes substance of the the God, which spiritual body The of the and nerves physical body are immortality. which into of the organs through come we knowledge a of God is revealed all tilings,as the wisdom through the substance We and
is to
body
The
He
balanced
redeemed
of the of
sympathetic
sensation.
to
on carry life,for when
physical beyond their
from
death
created.
speak nerves
be
powers
in
nerves,
But the
they either
they manifold are
of
nerves
all
must
motion,
be
functions
and
unbalanced,
direction,
we
are
evenly of
the
we
go
violating
FOR
the
law
divine
Neither
an
human
can
divine
or
suffer
must
love
be
of
perfection glory. Through and
the
involved
it, and
/or
As
and
it is
to
is the
that to
transfiguration with
feel
we
If
man.
power of man,
life
the
the
the
the
Him, in
divine
emotions
Himself
created, then
the
and
of
strikes
the
substance
and
the
spiritual forces, are in perfection and joy of physical
revealed.
are
that
powers
both
are
in
love
the
are
manifested
God
has
without
nerves"
stood
was
When
He
action,
spiritual life The
Elias
system
sympathy.
liarmonious and
man.
and
nervous
which
law
In
spiritual substance
of
instrument the
in
Moses
when
Jesus,
love
substance
manifested.
manifested
"the organization, and sympathetic God's revealed is which through organs love is the keynote of God's life, love the must nerve sympathetic play upon God's
accordingly.
be
never
an
reveal
176
BODY.
AND
proportion, and organization can
of
without
Mind
SOUL
SPIRIT,
playing
are
against him,
impossible
within
from
the
for
man's
upon
and be
to
eye
organization out. with-
from
in
placed
an
witliout
feeling pain, so it is impossible atmosphere soul to be in the atmosphere for the redeemed of sin without feeling spiritual distress, through the sympathetic will of always be subject to the nerves feeling. We of smoke
atmosphere this
world; and
will
when
will
world
"natural
**shall
to
obedience
continually, life, we have
we
it
are
runs
have
sometimes
through
the
great
in
So
the
We
diseased
the
body
channels
the for
are
to
triune in
reversal
violating
are
brought
Take
of God,
Son
in
are
that
He
and
stroyed. de-
the
its effects
when
sinned.
three
be
life.
and
we
perfection of substance God has that man's promised to a changed body" ^'spiritual His in likeness." obedience disThrough
awake
comes
while
being
reach
death.
came
the
in
from
never
shall
death
and
trust
sin, but
of
body" man
only
substance
body
this
disease
sin, can
this
keep
Man's in
of
our
seen
senses,
thread
of disobedience the in
lajv of God the physical and
see
that
find We again. We circulatory system. circulating the blood; the
god's
176
arterial
the
venous,
each
by
man,
law
a
law
The
Even
the
violated, "circulate''
trinity
in the
oblongata
spiritual
life of
from, body.
In
the
touch
is
alone
atomic
of
'^magnetic
is
if not
The
spirit
of and
physical and out. trinity throughin trinity; and
a
both
which
other
every the entire
which
both is
separates cell
law
of
of the
physical
separates which
that
another,
one
does
cerebellum
to,
life,and
and
construction
manifested
it
is
mental,
spirit force
presence
or
the
creation
body
spirit
is
so-called
the
of
cell is involved
one
the
cerebrum,
attracts
together all
holds in
the
of
in
blood
of
are
we
action,
the
by
also
Man's
also
It
creation.
the
seat
in itself the
and
it
disease; for circulated
blood,
the of
the
the
"
man.
cell
cell has
is
is
medulla
each
be
of
law
the
manifested
There
Each
by the law overpowered the circulatory system
is
will
is
man
through flows, unconsciously to
circulation
harmony
result
brain.
the
is
which
itself, but
of
And
spirit force.
of
that
capillary.
blood
of gravitation
on.
conscious
the
the
spirit-action, through carried
healing
of
and
channels
these
of
laws
and
we
and feel
constitutes
life" of the
body. is body
the of tlie that spiritual force power is so afraid of its of, because ignorant, superstitiousman When man-given **niagnetism/' '^hypnotism," etc. names, violated the moral and has ing, spiritual laws of his beman This
his
personal
very qualities of
force; just
his
heart,
sinful
by
takes
presence
obedience
and
becomes
the
diabolical
the
on
a
destructive
laws
of
spirit, the personal presence becomeslife-givingand health-giving. within himself has the power So man to save to destroy or he yields to the law soul or that of another, his own of as of righteousness. sin or to the law received If we have the teachings of the world, "the and commandments of men," concerning the mind body, we
violate
to
ourselves in the
error,
enemy
as
the
law
divine
and mind
the
When
ignorance
and
of souls
urging
body,
we we
foolishness, on
to
same
become
and
others. or
to
may are
disease
a
destructive distress
see
know back and
that of
force or
sin
it, with
destruction.
ness sickand the
178
in
god's
the
flesh
of
of
We
man.
That
man.
God
is
have
a
of
false desires, which result his
is
health
own
that
body,
3'our
and
redeem
Look
1
reveal
may
it from
sin. is
musical
is
the
We
the
wisdom that
perfect
inventions
instruments,
working Spirit says,
know
more
"
law, and Give
God
of the
the
against
ever
The
and
education,
divine
the
Man
life.
meclianical
at
with
(false education)
false
of
happiness.
instrument
an
conscience
telligen in-
the
against
wars
intelligence
conflict
and
healing
which
the
enfeebled
an
of
laws
me
in
more
it,
fect per-
its manifestations.
graph, telephone, the teleThe more perfect the
the
etc.
its purposes. perfectly it reveals So it is with tlie physical We form. created that were Creator, and might reflect the we image of our appear before and blameless God in love. We holy can never
construction,
before
appear until
we
through Paul
wills
God,
His
temple
Moses
and
a
will obedient
thousand the
hear
His our
"
His
voice
Spirit, and body.
of, **Well
show
forth
done," His
love
living sacrifice,holy, bodies unto By presenting our and the of God, yield to Spirit our your
bodies
a
God."
unto
become of
of
''Present
minds
harps
and
born
says,
our
more
are
acceptable God
the
to
will, until
His
strings)
are
attuned
our
to
bodies His
(the
"Song
of
Lamb."
the Solar portion of the body, known as the of feeling are Plexus, "syrapatlietic nerves" great Divine these love located. divinely constructed playing upon the to feel, through us body, the nerves causes of the Holy Ghost quickening us into Spiritual presence is the know for the This is to life. God, quickening revelation of God's Spirit. It is not to believe through our been intellect that we have quickened by the Spirit,because the reveal the soul through unto the spiritof man only can of the divine the quickening of the "spiritin man" nerves know Spirit. We as we feel it nothing of pain except know -We nothing of physical life, through the nerves. is life and and feeling. As God except through sensation of God know love, we nothing have/eZ^ Him except as we of the the nerves" "sympathetic through great Solar In
the
central
FOR
Plexus of
(sunlight
we
awakening place
the
feel
through center
God's
physical
first
the
of love
love
His
radiates
is
soul,
the
by
Divine
The
Him And
when
Him
in
our
All
creation. evolved we
very
and
pass
away;"
not
mortal when
body;"
body" this and
we
the
subject
Lawgiver,
Him
in
to
the
concerning
the is
of
first
"they and
spirit
truth,"
"in
"
was
and
temple, Him
substance
spiritual
are
"Heaven
then
from is
counsel
for
turn
bodies
Spirit
from
and
the
the
flesh,'' but
it
so
is
Divine upon
evolved
even
tion salva-
the
"made
was
God
spiritual
worship
we
God,
can
worship
must
it
then
body.
substance;
as
And
and
Look
being
as
manifests
for
the
of
the
of
substance.
His
is
body
substance.
of
we
spiritual
body
entire
that,
Spirit.
whom
to
living
this
of
man,
his
healing
law
the
chemistry
law
One
only
it
God
of
spiritual
of
life.
of
appeals
being,
our
center,
much
so
name
with
carry
Spirit
not
true
the
law
always
or
spiritual
living,
a
it the
give
through for
of
the
the
is
He
body.
it is
From
body
spiritual
spirit,
or
therefore,
body,
will
the
the
center
the
as
in
the
the
at
well
as
Himself
in
strikes
and
of
action
Spiritual
within,
the
circumference
Those that
heart.
the
take
Spirit
conscious
are
of
nerves
ful wonder-
system.
nervous
God,
of
spiritual
the
to
touch
the
of
portion
the
feel
we
healings
sympatlietic
healing
tliese
All
this
through
that
conscious
love.
the
it is
for
179
BODY.
AND
soul),
are
of
through
SOUL
the
of
that
body
the
who
SPIRIT,
in
will
we
for
involved
worship of
His
which
that
Spirit.
in
ship wor-
truth."
substance
spiritual Spirit;
that
is
Truly
creations.
shall
earth
this
for shall "
"natural "death
yet
body"
pass
living take shall
is swallowed
but
away,
spiritual
up
changed in
shall
words
substance
"this "
itself
upon be
My
immortality, to
victory."
a
"spiritual
LECTURE
VIIL
SELF-WILL.
What we
constitutes
continually
are
Rom.
6
IG
:
"Know
servants
to
whether
of
sin
his
directed
of
the
for without
right
God
also
(as Mine
sent
to
their
So wise truth
do
it is with
enough
for
man),
error,
(180)
lor
who
will
the often
refer We
ask
child,
the
"You
thinks
a
it is wise
man
what
to
as
according without
man
witness
a
which
question child
to
its
for
of
select
seek
hath will
or
thing some-
inability
to
please."
w\q
enough
His
of
that, *'!
Father
realizing choose
sible responleft
obey.
the the
God
us
declared
of
is
accept
or
had
personal
a
is
to
make
its
If. own
so.
the to
should
will
power
man
left
not
he Son
say,
child
it will
and
whom
parents.
will
has
own
itself, and
the
however,
lie
God
judge
never
unto
choice.
conscience)
(the
would
to
Cliildren
wisely,
choose
He
will, but
own
for
choice,
His
example
Me."
choice
as
sent
an
use
this
holds
If
power
The
for
it
of
eousness?" right-
the
refuse
will, but
our
wrong
But
within"
**witness
not
will,
true
of
use
mind
the
obey;
ye
action.
to
our
obedience
yet
is
in
of
unto
of
and will
to
whom
willing,
or
s[)iritual
standard
standard.
that
will
or
divine
a
constitutes to
the
death,
To
presented in
power
read
yourselves
obedience of
that
results
yield
to
are
power;
We
the ye
of
or
is
choice.
free
us
and
ye
unto
life
a
our
is
whatever
sin
wilU.
whom
to
the
Willing
force,
by
leaves
have
'^whether
spiritual
a
that
death,
all
righteousness."
will
our
all conscious
are
our
servants
unto
We
choice,
of
not,
ye
obey,
We
power?
exercising
c/ioicc
the
choice.
of
will
children;
grown
distinguish
light
and
if
between
darkness,
we
believe
right we
make
and
we
are
wTong.
the
choice
SPIRIT,
FOE
But
ourselves.
for
believe of
that
our
we
if
creation,
own
able
.
sensible
''little children,'*
understand
to
able
not
181
BODY.
AND
like
we,
not
are
SOUL
the
understand
to
mysteries God's
ways
world, not capable why He placed us in this sin-cursed of guiding seek wiser lives, then our own guide we a the Holy Ghost who is able "into all truth." to guide us But there natural who is something within the is man, "born of the will of the not flesh," which beyond can see the will of the he will choose flesh, and consequently according to the will of the flesh, until he is "quickened by the Spirit" of truth. Are choice according to the will of the making we our flesh? or according to the will of God? We hear persons God I would the will of do say so often, '*If I only knew or
"
"
it."
The
Word
yield our according that
will
own
*'!''asserts
the
is
will
Man's
Word,
of
will
will, we
His
to
His
to
God
of
will
and
God; and
hnow
we
will
do His
I, the
is the
if
and
ego,
It is
itself.
continually referring to *'my" liefs, views, ''my" bedesires, "my" choice, ''my" wishes, "my" and thoughts *'my" theories, **my" feelings, "my" before The not "my" wants. '*my" is ever we are us, and to another views, right or wrong, willing to yield our "
not
no
when
any
soul
that
sees
it
is
capable, in itself, of being wise, or good, or happy, and thirst after begins to "hunger righteousness,"
not
and that
soul
lack
wisdom,
turns
When
God
the
let him
decides
for
reveals
to
us
us
the
the
divine
We
know
when
we
speak
they
whenever hold of
our
right
attributes we
are
of
any
the
power Otherwise
children
right
man
are
of
responsible wrong;
justice,
mercy,
We
things,
holds
from
wrong.
but
know
angry, and
God
while
also
and
covetous,
these
of
Conscience
unmerciful.
we
from
sin.
love,
right. So recognize right
we
"If
wrong,
not
are
perceiving
for
the
from
conscious
are
him gave conscience.
He
lie, when
a
says,
through responsible
us
when
We
that
not
of God hold
Word
of God."
man.
not
etc.
impatient.
ask
created voice
would
whose
God,
to
God
hearing
do
But
God.
to
even
us
scious consponsible re-
We
they the
or
are
moment
capable in-
gob's
\%^
they right
and
Thus
the
spoken speak to
He
Him
and
child
ask
willing
consciousness
wisely
for
in
wisely
tlie
to
turn
But
the
have
we
be
to
it
soul; when
capable
first,and
laws
His
choose
choosing
of
willing
to
God.
"
convinced
that
power
it,
for
to
life,it becomes
of
makes
choose
every
it is not
wills
our
which to
the
not
all wisdom
oi
is wise, and
alone
that
great questions
source
father
or
has
yield
That
it is with
so
heart
the
it
And
will
wisdom.
much
How
man.
we
mother
that
itself
in
His
between
distinguish responsible.
natural
when
us
ask
to
them
the
to
for to
is the
believes
hold
do
we
wrong, He has
can
unto
bealino
of
sufficiently intelligent
are
more
laws
know
just, in
are
fromourown
Back
that
God
to
turn
order
self-will
of this
self-willtoHisholywM. intelligence of the aelf-aasumed intelligence,the find it, natural and mind, Analyze the human man. we There is that within by nature, selfish and domineering. We which us recognize to be a tyrannical power. we in our have views, we self-asserting,calcuown a It ating, logical, subtle, cunning, but deceptive, mind. "the that results in is this mind the will, and plays upon there
is
f)ersist
"
wisdom
this
of
Born
this
of
self-directed
permit ourselves yield ourselves
into
there
is
the
continually question of using his
The
result
Each
of this
nation,, state,
the
to
choose laws
and
ms.
kind
and
city
self-will
degree
who
of
this the
have
will,
to sequently con-
and
wills,
neighbor
so on
creeds
of We
self-will, in
by punishment
governments. laws
diflFerent
to
power
self-will
in man
like
not
the
which should
rule
all
are
find
the
and
of
courts
dictates be
born
are
justice (?) of man
to
man-made
world
the
for
ing accord-
governments,
the
self-will.
of
has
diflFerent
and
established
It is the
and
All
of .s(7f" self-desires
justice
county
of
customs.
human
of
Born
his
will
we
will.
own
have
of
with
war
how do
conflict
forms
iviU of those
for
at
ment"a self-govern-
opposing
an
is all
We
its government
of
continual
for
We
God."
with
decide
we
hands
the a
desire
governed.
is
man
is
which
be
to
foolishness
is
will
by
government
every
which
world,
meted
man.
what out
to
his
fellow
carried
on
self-will.
the
All
self-will
right
man,
in
SOUL
SPIRIT,
"0B.
"wisdom
self-interest.
and
the
world"
this
of
self-will
This
that
find
We
'^patriotism," is
of
the
of
183
BODY.
wrong.
or
name
AND
war,
result
of
born
of
is
against
operates
the victim. physical life,and the body becomes and its sensitive Mau*s vibrations, nerve body, with quivering flesh, responds to self-will, either in pleasure or theories the seeks will, the to control pain. Selj ever and beliefs We others. of continually trying to are to tyrannize over others,^ and compel iheiri to yield to mj8. Take illustration the for ill; following: You are an the
a
calls
friend
and
another
exactly to
advise
different
a
either
with
of
view,
opposes
them."
like the
you
into
You
perhaps
in/' and do
is
form
much
very
person her or
his
result
ment; treat-
form,
mends recom-
chance
"not
clashes
wHl
Then,
the
and
friendship of years. the question of creed.
Take and
will
medical
of
"happens opposite; another You something entirely different.
view
in the
friend
form
some
the
agree
wUly
advises
break
a
with
perhaps
acquaintance^
an
until
begin
you and
find
to
that
"religious views," barrier Immediately a springs opposing you it. It You is between not help can spiritual a up you. faiths and all warfare. It is self-will that opposing cause the differences between souls that '*5^ua7Teia6ou" what they d(m!t know about.'* Self is only of the flesh, and must at inquire
beliefs.
have
last
end
There
in
seeds
are
all self-will. finds
dust
the
'*earth
"
of disease,
The
wills
I, the
to
earth
and
and
misery which
ego,
ashes
death,
has
ashes."
to
inherent
yielded
to
in error,
its own, and clashing with and cruel. bitter, harsh Injustice, impatience, gets angry, insincerity, hypocrisy and suspicion, etc. (see "Sinner's We become Chart"), are the fruits of these opposing wills. and heartless, uncharitable, stubborn, ungracious ing. unyieldother
These
death.
"For
flesh, the of
these
upon
the
powers the
brain attributes
continually
that
and
born
are
that
soul
sinneth,
trembling of
physical body
sin, as
of
and a
self-will it shall
nerves
all result.
end
forms
die."
become of
only in
disease
The
victims, come
GOD*S
184
When
we
HEALING
OF
all around
see
self-will
LAWS
let
results
the
us
this
of
tive destruc-
it?
of
not Why say, like the little child, I am of not capable of choosing *'the way life" for myself; I am not out sufficiently wise to reason the what great question of immortality, or of knowing becomes death. do I not of man after Why yield my
does
will, that way, We
but
go
know,
not
choose
for
when
and of
*'Mamma,
do
you
Any
woman.
once
acquired
from
it.'*
"the
wisdom
and
she
life.
And
there of
could
he
that
That child
the
boy It is
did in
the
not
twelve
how, to
which
of she
and it.
love
in
had
taught
so
not
accept of
she
believes
mother will
sees
the
that
and
God
choice.
your that
the
girl.
young
disease
and
wisdom. she
the
is It
end.
gives In
the
the
boy sin,
young but
her;
to
self-will
justified
cigarettes.
with
sickness
with
her
saw
You
tell
ruining her life with worldly excitement books, dressing, late hours, reading sensational all with while the that such her, knowing plead in
break
conflict
is
result
have
not
can
into coming God given
did,
are
you
She
do
said:
You
when
you
right,
of years the tion ques-
on
about
habit.
death
as
the
well
me
that
you
evil
an
it
boy,
smoking
wisdom
see
us.
turned
mother's
a
and
smoking same
of
quit the
was
he
world,"
the
not
as
tell
was
disease
saw
the
habit
my I knew
for
boy
or
How
to
anytliing
will
man
the
to
know
not
girl
opposed
spoke reasoned as wisely cigarette smoking,
know,
me?
young
I
does
Christ, who
to
the try to influence the great world stands
age,
a
not
let Him
and
remember
I
why
us
often
Self-will
doing is
which
a
herself
question leaves if
us
and
a
You
life will She
harm. the
free find
will
itself,and
asserts no
she
foolish
etc.
death.
of
her
will
to
in
make
The "
that our
days our we come, and of soul, we anguish anxiety, pain care, can sorrow, look back and the of choice. say,^'God gave nje only power t have had His wisdom, but He I might refused it gave I chose the choice, and whenever So, me own way." my the privilege, of choosing believe have of us we ignoany results the of our self-asserted rantly, we must own reap
own
to
lives
god's
186
is of God. because reveals
His
not
ask
will
has
kept
and
asked
wisdom,
for
I liad of the
world,
there
from
not
do; obey.
to
life.
But
continually all
the
yielded withheld.
great
We
must
stand
well
The
our
find
We
that
rest.
chosen
ourself
of
thoughts It
man.
yielded
is
wills
our
God the Me"
"
is
and
is
in
we
not
His
when
pain
and
a
we
and
spirit
to
worship God,
to
worship
and
stars, relatives, our
thing every-
will,
our
desires,
until
it is we
to
"
otherwise
Him;
reward a
of
question say,
worship
our
of
we
**I will."
Then
we
will
know
ceive re-
unto not
can
ceive re-
spirits become
spirits become
our
and
our
we
**Come
He
will.
the
is idolatrous.
Him
worship worshiping love.
when
subject to His Spirit, and the intelligence of God; will.
will
plastic
we
not
think
we
and
our
ones,
love, and
loving
again us
But
that
we
trouble
moon
sun,
have
until wills everything our very the idolatrous and the to worship of men We and God not men. worship both can God if we We have impossible. worship
enslaved
are
loved
our
surely
soul
was
thing always
and
body,
I
for
recognized
complete;
disobey, and "
and
think
we
not
plans
you
one
commanded
are
offers
everybody
"
some
did
I did
I
I
become
and
whole
to
world
the
interests,
our
conflict
is
will, that
and
have
we
There
selfGod's
that
passed,
the
ways withheld
that
own
my
months
sickness
the
Because
"
things
way,
it may be must
after
ask, because
yield eight points, yield nine points, and in the sight of God.
surrender
me
saying, "Child,
was
Long that
conscious
very
own
in
Me."
to
enough yield
we
but
God
be
both
from
Why?
not
and
weeks
of
anxiety, God,
my
whole
had
God
him
gave
turned
and
deal.
have
I wanted
will We
yield our
to
would
that
your
hands.
God,
how
to
as
within
the
dissatisfied, and
while
had
to
do
I
and
days
seemed
me
and
to
want
I
tell
would
want
of
earthly glory.
wisdom.
for
asking
wisdom
God
something
was
still there.
was
ignorant and
and
me
wisdom
receive
us
and great power received God's Spirit and
will
healing
wisdom.
Solomon
wisdom
of
do
We man's
laws
wise and
do
with His
FOR
SOUL
SPIRIT,
AND
187
BODY.
its desires, in being **of persist in self-will and the of fashions, world, worldly,'' in following the dictates creeds and society; if we persist in setting aside the voice of God, last to plead conscience with at our ceases us, find and with ourselves worldly "educated we a science," conand believe we justified in (?) that we are may for right. But will find that exercising it as a standard we If
we
such
and
easily silenced, self
and
soul
death and
death,
life
the
through
sinneth,
that
form every infirmity known
forces
of
die;
"
sickness, mankind.
to
the
will
it
be
attributes
of
quenched
are
educated
"an
it shall
lies
follow
to
us
and
God;
from
not
leave
sin, until
of and
disease the
(?) is
conscience
a
by '*For
conscience,''
and
between
every The
form
sin
and
disease
of
first sin
to
was
Disobedience (which through brought sin back sickness and the first step towards death). And in Obedience God be from must (which brings salvation said Jesus and *'Ye to Nicodemus, sin, sickness death). To **be bom be born must again" is first to die. again." will of God, self-will If I yield my desires will and to the and the will of God, the gift of eternal I receive dies, and and of His Son is a knowledge Jesus of God life, which He do said who the to Christ, the only One ever came
turn
from
will
of His
God
Father.
where
exercised
Jesus
only the
always
and
Glass.
And
Father
came
healed did
all
sin, but
He
form
sin
no
temptation.
ever
That
He
which
temptation, possession of
(jrod
and
us
into
all
is
truth"
is if
we
the are
Saint's
raised
the
for He God
gave
disease
and
resisted
self is lost
Holy
in
Ghost,
obedient
unto
to
Spirit
God.
The
which
will
Him.
to
every
yielded
never
The
and
God,
which
to-day.
He
dead,
of power confronted
He
His
of
Father.
the
to
but
Looking
wisdom
and
the
Him,
Spirit
soul, and
Christ
way and
man.
every all to
offered
of the
of
same
will
instance
an
self-will,
of See
show
to
touched
healed
the
disease
needs
and
the
us
possible
was
life
of
find
never
God.
of
knew
show
we
attribute
one
will
who to
every that
the
meet
by
Scriptures," and
the
**Search
to
Jesus, every takes
Spirit "lead
188
god's
If the
give of
the
in
us,
also
we
have
And
earth.
the
from
if it takes
the
us
childlike
Divine
the
power last
we
taste
chaste
all
in
intended
Even
friend
on
and
thought
in
desire
we
last
spirit,in
things.
and
returns,
in
the
or
hopeful,
courageous. and sin, error
to
no
say dollar
God
of
truthful, just and to
drink
wisdom
and
will
Spirit
will, let him
With
and
become
deed; temperate
in
the
restful, compassionate
and
peaceful And
surely
freely."
faithful
become
we
intelligence to recognize
''Whosoever
life
of
waters
the
world,"
wisdom.
divine
us
the
of
healing
of
spirit has
natural
**the wisdom
laws
food
our
natural
the
food,
as
to-day we scarcely find a has a perfectly natural does who who palate, one person food. The not or crave highly seasoned heavily salted ruined taste" of man. by the "educated palate has been God when takes little But possession of us we become as children in ''eating and drinking to the glory of God." will to God, there is nothing When to gain yield our we in lose this world. Self is and lost in God; nothing to whatsoever free to speak the and are Spirit of Love we The life is a life of faith to speak. sweetest us prompts God
the
in
it for
of God.
Son
We
God
for
in
spirit of
a
be
never
can
longer
self
makes
us
world,
and
trust
Him.
trust
all
ask
we
and
showing the light. The worship Him.
day
in
seen
in
the
Him
unto
spirit to things." "
offer way.
the
to
wealth
we
Him,
He is
that
and
thing In
no
He take
riches
trust
He
tells
to
us
church?
and
have
who
At Him free.
us
ing livtrust
is
gain from gives us
to
those
make
can
is His
God
worship
*'must
It
nothing to
way
God.
in
which
that
know
It
loved
simply
are
we
God.
is that
alone
life
will
have
How?
our
man
If
We
first
truth
There
in
We
week?
truth," for
faith
the
of
privilege
We
believe
We
shaken.
faith, but
anxiety about
it all away. in God; and
taken
has
feel
distress, or
fear
longer
no
ones;
But
man.
the "
not
is to
do
home? in
the
yet love One
Spirit If
no
that
we
and
give
all yield our body, soul and will life and "all give to us His thought nor thing that God could has in His hot already offered us His have gift in His way, we can of God
"
"
even
Eternal
Life.
LECTURE
DIVINE
THE
How 12:
possible
it
is
1, 2: ''Present
be the
that
and
good
If
man
will
always
the
His
living
Jesus
It
the
said,
God,
"Follow
*'I
that
our
will
in
senses
search
said,
**Ye
do
easy
to
the
ing know-
Herein
present
conform
would
tures Scrip-
not
err,
God." to
God
of
body
our
mind
our
know
God
to
will
true
we
will.
is to
be
of
than for
God.'*
mind
His
body
the
was
When
God.
mind
He
unless
obey,
we
Or
could to
Is will
the
not
will
our
of
says, first
are
create
his
in
a
Is
a
made
of free
responsible
will,
life.
own
is
will
the
will
man
free
It
danger? to
a
we
lost.
is
another?
have
him
give
that
soul
the
saved.
against
or
of to
world? God
His
is
It
to
the
will, 0
Thy
will.
the
otherwise
decide
will
easy
is
what
God."
we
will
the
His
Jesus?
Christ
and
did
bondage or
Word
sacrifice.
living
a
is
soul
the
we
do
to
come
receive
the
of
not
by
command.
ft is impossible
soul
being,
if
Me,"
The
in
But
He
to
the
is
and
willing
will
of
And
prove
perfect
power
is not
Christ.
presented
was
it
sacrifice.
obey
the
nor
But
of
Jesus
for
err,
will.
mind
must
of
not
ceptable ac-
transformed
ye may
If
holy,
service.
ye
judgment,
Rom.
in
sacrifice,
be
that
right.
Scriptures,
reveals
the
him
set
will
in
errs
but
and
acceptable
read
reasonable
your
mind,
your
ever
we
a
of
living
a
world;
this
to
renewing
is
We
right?
a
bodies
which
conformed
not
WILL.
will
to
your
God,
unto
IX.
to
choose is
WiUing
a
,
force
potent to our
for
good
ourselves,
for
or
others
for
evil. are
Our
interested
will and
is
affected
choice. 13
not
[i^]
fined con-
by
god's
190
Man is
will
and
will, for there
the
flesh,
as
the
in
is
direct
we
wiUj
We
man.
weakness
is
nature, the
will not
brought
nature,
direction
of
wilL
involves
body will
firmness The
either
of or
butes attri-
of the the
is
us
the
will.
through
use
we
The
reveal
attributes
operating will
our
spirit
within
the
the
against
spirit of
upon
or
power or
that
to
the
part in except
force
of the
The
bear
to
continually
are
The
in
desires
our
takes
is for
is the
hand
divine
we
or
divine
the
of
our
power. action every
by
of will will
will
play with constructed by the
is
that
the
of
intellect,or
and
Nerve-life
into
called
action
of the
manifestation
no
it. of
exercise
All
governed pliysical organization
physical life,so
through
alone.
is clothed
The
thoughts.
healing
faculties
imaging
will
the
of
himself
for
the
tlirough
words,
other
live
not
can
laws
sinful
will, and
bondage
or
freedom. feel that
We
privilege
of
what
think
we
and the
our
of
"when
would
we
ourselves
What
good,"
powerless
have
not
to
bondage
find
as
we
of
the
the
will
will
to
the
others
we
*iusts
we
do
to
it matters
is the
desires, the
do
we
that
act; yet the is involved life,of another
eternal
the
and
own,
direction
will.
our
senses,
what
in
or
our
-choice; that
own
perhaps
exercise The
"
life is
our
of the
piness, hapin
will? "
flesh; and enslaved, and We
do.
have
that Scripture says, "Know ye not to whom to obey, his servants ye yield yourselves servants death of sin unto of to whom or ye are ye obey; whether obedience These unto masters (seen or righteousness?" within out. withand unseen) to whom yield ourselves we are We its yield to the affectional nature, and become their We servants. yield to pride and fear, and become We its servants. servants. yield to the world, and become the
yielded
We
do
the
hour
will.
believe
not
will for the
possess say, ''Present until of
the
the
body. Christ"?
The
body
world, But
this
that
when
come
body a your is given into and
why
the
will
true
His uses our
and
give all wilL Why
living sacrifice"?
world
conform
the
would
we
exercise
to
power
weakens
hands,
does
we
God
Because,
it is in the
its will mind
"
that
that
to
to
power destroy the
"the
mind
of
teachings
and
get angry,
to
us
ignorant,
and
anything
we
will
the
with
is centered
He
with
the
spiritual,
we
surrender
we
the
us
will
desire
any
desires
same
intellectual
or
interfere
not
the
do
to
us
results.
It
self.
for
or
of
must
man
another,
of
we
fied satis-
we
are
will
into
Do
Spirit
it?
The
will
our
of the
for
own
in
have
wUls
give
do
for
mits per-
unfaithful,
permits
we
not
cares
intellect
covetous,
as
will? and way the will with conflict
our
be
ever
It
when
will
Have
long
so
ditions, interests, tra-
The
intellect
The
wills
that
us
it?
for
care
dishonest,
do,
to
self and
in
hands,
be
of another.
tells
God His
choose
world.
the
impatient.
the
to
of
to
191
BODY.
AND
is enslaved
intellect
natural
The
SOUL
SPIRIT,
FOR
for
two
no
and
objects in life,or the physical conditions; and clashing of the wills of a
same
there
continually men. will unto if all will yield God asks us to yield our and Him; and their opposing eternal wills unto true will, then one all clashing of wills must end. It must be so, for otherwise is therefore
could
there no
peace of
way all seek
earth,
on
wills
will.
and same
us.
There
can
or
be
into
harmony
one
our
unites,
Take
the God
become
Cross
the
is the
same
beliefs.
one
true
in
order
with "all
while
will, that with
the
another. in
one"
man's
question of will provide
the
the
him
to
tlie
the
money
against will. religion, 07ie faith,
will
of
divine
only
is the
divine
and
moment
find
we
cross
The
will
of man, deal wuth.
Will
true
one
tive sensi-
will
person
we
the
to
the
in
to
affections, and when
desires,
own
the
another
is
possible
no
opposed
are
person of one,
think
may
we
harmony
wills
will
that
but
their
Cross
different
a
There
self-will; for
of
points'
man.
religious
the
interest, only,
brought unite
It
results.
interests
one
will
and
"tender
natural
we
earth,
of
four
are
much
his
oppose he to
the
itself.
desires
attaining world, which
have
we
how
matter
of
of the
ipstantly
we
no
hope
There
character
No
vain
the
the
through
and
in heaven peace satisfaction on
no
realizing the interests in
divine
be
man
wall,
be
and
in
that
power
Satan's
may
will; for will
for instance; if money, for all of our monetary
we
can
God's divide.
believe
necessities,
god's
192
has
He
as
of
interests
that
would
wishes
nor
no
God
conflicts
monetary
end;
must
healing
of
all
promised,
children
have
laws
for
cause
can.
clashing
a
desires
we
the
longer
have
the
wills.
We
that
would
call
no
of
interests
nor
with
child of God. opposition in another that If we will God provide for us, we firmly believe at rest caring nothing if our are worldly neighbor has have thousands and Our of dollars wills we nothing. to God, realize that He will having been surrendered we and is neceswhatever for us sary provide all that is necessary will it in if is His to carry out sight. God right our in the human will provide. We have longer interest no wills or human have creeds, and "nothing left to quarrel out
"
about."
the
When
faith
of
His
have
their
own
of
and
satisfy the
heart,
human
affections.
will
never
seek
friends
for
up loved in
ones,
this
way
self-will. binds
the
thought the man.
world
and can
there we
Self must will.
seek
and
will
hands
be
of
no
we
against thought, and it is will against
the
tions, affeclife to
to
have
his
that
the
love
wisdom,
clashing
no
does
will
the
in
give,
not
God
will
we
raise
foolishness the
"
of
medical
against man
bondage
the
from
will will
quarrel
Spirit; He will raise ui" Onh' clashing of wills.
the find
longer
love, He
man.
ourselves All
no
involved His
God
His be
free
To-day
for
which
will
die.
is
bound
human
all
feel
we
which
have
that
us
sacrifice
to
are
with in
a
source man
only
same
will
in
the
at
is the
When
That
for
Men
power
there
and
We
we
and
God,
only
we
religion." over.
a
binds
Him,
to
God
belief,
of
is the
terrible
man
happiness,
hands
which
wills
true
in the affections. way God is the true love,
health
is that
in their
wills; for
human
sway
God
our
"the
manifested
as
that
know
Religion
have
the
it is
creed,
a
is in
religion to quarrel "religions." It own
any
over
a
We
God
unto
church,
will
surrender
we
and
Him,
want
Our
will.
When
God. to
not
religion.
true
surrendered
world.
of the
want
we
do
We
want.
is
will
of
humanity
schools will.
warring
with
All
over
against
GOD^S
194
ing is
that
reveals
only
Spirit
hardened God
of
Christ The
in
Father
in
When
ourselves, the
but
of said
We
that
He
He
said.
He
will
permit
the
works
of
evil
works
in
and
body. and
disease Jesus out
free
came
darkness
of
itself.
Calvary.
"to
came
Him
to
and
us,
Our
to
enter
into in
we
Salvation
in
of is
is
of
His
the
The found
will
He
and
of
will
only
the
of
of
unrest wicked to
man
in
his
wrought
and
sin
If
''destroy
anguish
of
will
Father.
devil."
and
work
the Him."
the
the
has
sin
Jesus
ye
to
of
life,
sent con-
and
hear
us
works
our
and
Him.
Son, lead
for
plish accom-
Father;
conscience
victims
light
against
Satan
us.
are
the
or
will the
suffering
into
He
not
can
the
for
plan
thought
no
God
beloved
undo
remorse
rescue
will
so.
devil*'
the
all
the
My If
Him?
God,
mth
is
of
fested mani-
ness. righteous-
longer
no
without
man
do
to
"This
hear
we
in
work
came
says,
Will
we
*'new
will
be
of
**Take
words, the
birth"
we
self, him-
for
may
fruits
forth
wills
live
God
of
Spirit
our
even
should
man
himself
for
not
am
but
I,
not
yet
is
man
bring
we
Jesus'
But
man.
Father
that
accept
morrow." this
the
yield
we
of
that
that
live
lives,
our
life
intended
We
alone.
The
**I
says,
live;
I
the
that
down,
Paul
souls.
our
nevertheless
nie.'*
never
lay
we
It
heart.
the
of
nature
that
enter
Christ:
liveth
HEALING.
unjust
heart
may
with
crucified
cruel,
the
that
Oh'
LAWS
and
one.
lead
them
never
can
the
soul
Cross
of
LECTURE
HEALING
Healing
in
Nazareth. He
established
only
the
He
Sin
the
destroys
had
man
sin
had
all
the
over
without
and
all
He
of
As
God,
became
law
in
establishing which
by
"Christ
hath
made that
one
be
come over-
He
as
of
redemption
knew
that
that
love
the
the
power
"the
had
He
Spirit would
righteousness would
all
overcome
violation the
was
all
earth;
in
of
divine
the
embodiment
sacrifice
those
of He
sin.
for
gave
death.
for
So
sin.
for
work,
the
(for
sin
who
self Him-
upon
only
the
and
was
Jesus,
principles,
divine
sin
blood,
of
Nazareth.
of
over
and
do
must
heaven
power
fear.
principles
a
act
in
He
of the
altar
on
of
a
the
it is
tree." the
under
hanging
for
us; a
on
sacrifice, sin
from
us
for
of
overpower
redeemed curse
altar
the could
hangeth
Himself
bring
So
in
power
sacrifice,
sacrifice
could
was
sacrifice.
of
taking a
Therefore,
unrighteousness,
hatred
one
Death
Jesus
in
measure"),
overcome
life
life
life.
rests
flesh;
become
Jesus
life.
immortal
from He
mortal
and
He
a
shedding
earth,
to
coxne
flesh,
eternal
by alone
of
dress
the
would
as
altar
the
through
sins
Sinai,
wiiich
time,
death
own
institution, of
He
that
knew
His
of
Mount
of
crucitixion.
that
at
Jesus
of
on
the
sacrifice
forth
remission
law
the
atonement,
of
tliat
work
the
gave
the
altar
gave
is
Lord
of
act
shadowing He
When
ATONEMENT.
atonement
the
the
the
with
the
the
THE
IN
When
sealed
X.
In
penalty
and
curse
written, no
of
made
Jesus death. of
Cursed
other
death,
For
law,
the
is
except
ing be-
every
could
way
a
by
He the
tree.
sacrifice
we
see
shadowed
forth (195)
the
196
god's
sacrifice
Jesus
of
mankind was
the
when
He
was
flesh the
and
love
will
man
life
to
his
save
the
be
brought
His
had
be
is
lost
in
mouth
work If
are
conscious
to
the
through
of
we
the
sacrifice
is essential
to.
His
to
prayer life would
work,
His
We
God,
of
the
have
that
and
this
faith lieve, be-
we
with
our
is established
revealed
of
the
is
our
of
Word
these
received
work
the
that
truth
the
"
may
have
When testimony. witness Spirit bears and
death.
"Faith
another."
be
we
its
All
we
If
we
remain
to
believe
sins
our
fciith.
sins,
Lord,'*
His
receive.
witnesses
that
Ghost
and
that
"with
two
is
redemption
Lord.
our
Holy
trespasses
see
the
believe
If
was
immortality
atoning
eternal
of
of
Lord,
two
Spirit.
according the
of
this
belief
Word
upon and the
the
of
we
his
children
sins, and
our
Belief
not
can
we
is the
Jesus
that
In
result
revealed
the
receive,
witnesses the
could
only
that
testimony
established
and
lost
plan of salvation, by which through Jesus' death.
life
the
on
we
God
the
bore
and
the
as
believe,
receiving testimony
spirit by the
Him
the
answered, man
we
be
redeem
to
had
Jesus
accept of eternal
must
give
not
will, 0 God,'* it
Thy
redemption.
part of the
a
Until
do
healed.''
complete
would
Belief
will
belief, he
a
to
come
were
life.
to
life for
this love, for while
know
to
light. body, on the tree. He
spiritual given
his
hour
finds
God
of
redeemed
heart
said, *'I come
stripes we
man
dress
to
His
In
of God,
mercy the Himself
man
death; for through
from
men
crucifixion.
of and
upon
for
curse
enemy.
Jesus
because
death
a
from might be its penalty, death. It is impossible this love of God; impossible to comprehend
natural
the
sacrifice
When
take
to
became
tlie wisdom
crucified, that
for
Jesus
terrible
God,
of sin, and power tlie natural mind
for
us
of
healixg
cross.
the
willing
be
of
the
on
through
Great
laws
we
that will
truth,*' and
believe in
will
that
receive
holiness
holiness
by
separated
from
seek
God
no
receive
we
body without according
the
'^without
be
forgiven,
are
will
give
further to
our
man
lief. beshall
'*sanctification all
sin.
The
little child receive
who
fruits
of the
in the
Holy
the
was
believes,can
healing Spirit,we
the
Ghost
central
the And
all the
are
died
Christ
as
die, each
one
his
on
yielding
As
Spirit
The
life, neither
man.
must
we
so
die
not
die,
we
tween be-
life of
can
can
cross
it stands
And
we
the
Included
even
cross,
have
Vine."
regenerate
cross.
own
the
up
life.
the
His
on
the
giftsof
and
unregenerate
would
we
in the
Jesus'
in
figure
If
"abide
of faith," and
prayer
body.
must
197
BODY.
"the
pray
the
of
AND
SOUL
SPIRIT,
FOR
all out withand
sin
to
And self. sin and yielding up sin and as it is hard self are to lay natures, ingrafted in our very have down the only life of which knowledge. we any Therefore is The of redemption the cross work rejected. When The the soul is rejected. is rejected. Saviour be die finds that born of the to to self,it Spirit it must often other seeks the kingdom "some too way" to enter
self,without
God.
of
But and
life
other
**no
be
lie must
like
not
that
what
the
wisdom
our
children
the
under We
are
crucified
born
life.
In
there
death
is
the
no
of self.
save
of
like to be of
the
daily.
of
the
yielding
way
not
like
unto
be
to
But
us.
self-denial,
so
Self must earth, earthy. the
and
flesh,
crucified.
and
will
to
our
Some more
the
eternal
We the
by
then
the
do
not
see
its
way deprived of receive
we
bring brings
we
God die.
It is of the it *'seeks
except
its
brought daily cross. begins the
are
divine
will,
through willing to yield
life
sults. re-
own
pass
crucifixion
not
pleasures,
as
us.
Spirit,
But
child
a
do
We
its
child, until
a
crucifixion.
law.
can
denied
give
We
cross.
we
to
crucifixion
others, because divine
the
to
lusts
form
first
through rapidly than
for
die
of
It is of the
not
first
pass
to
to
guide
to
law
law, and
Self does
own."
of
than
the
wise.
not
do
Spirit
same
desires
humail
way "
that
more
any the
under
the
Self is
cross
We
sorrow.
of
under
the
know
we
desire
we
the
is necessary, because child does like to be not
in
end
is to
been
has
darkness; whereby
as
this
desires; but
its
light cancels given unto man,
death,
except
of
way
The
us
way"
saved,
the
realize
cancels
only
must
we
more
selves themcome,
through
the
god's
198
The
crucifixion
has
death
of
glory
of God
into
sake; for
self
meaning
double
and
the
healing
dual
a
the
day by day through is the
of
laws
form
which
that
life,through
yield (mr will to the divine subject to the persecutions of i\\B world. foolish, fanatical, and everything that man seek the kingdom of God, in His we down So
will and
our
own
the
Christian's
finds
it so;
Jesus,
unto
crucifixion
like
become
with
us
unto
Him.
It
severe
the
for
Christ's
we
become
We
called
are
can
cause be-
name,
by laying
way,
all
because
have
we
power
through
only
ciple Efoery disis given
one.
that
pass
is
that
a
not
could
live.
and
is
it
were
man
no
walks
Jesus
will
go
One
life. warfare
and
we
brings
persecutions
we
as
for
us,
of crucifixion.
other
the
to
double
this know
that
endure
and
we
to
power
and is complete Redemption perfect only through the continual in our lives. Day operation of the will of God added faith is To to knowledge knowledge. our by day faith
and to
is added
and
likeness
This
divine
Spirit
which
from
life unites
the
"
Holy
and until
us
of Clirist's
member
and
mold
and
shape
wisdom
Ghost
fell
Christ
to
holds
body
reflect
we man
us
in
the the
the
divine
image beginning.
the
that
breast
all of
makes
hand
divine
perfectly
so
within
which
"
in
trust
every
the
same
heart
"one
mind."
one
"Where
"Liberty
the do
to
Spirit as
the
of
"
please?
we
is, there
Lord
forbid.
God
is
liberty."
For
we
are
please. It is liberty in righteousness; liberty to do only that is right; liberty to God which act wisely, to walk says the Spirit and in the with Spirit; liberty to do anj'thing Jesus He would that do; and no liberty to do anything would Will offers? not do. we accept of the liberty He and is the Salvation healing in the atonement liberty of
and being crucified in Christ; freedom
every
child
help redeem knowledge fitted
for
through
of
man
of
the
the
God,
not
can
that from
Christ,
and
as
fall ; to
of we
we
used
be
may
the
indwelling atonement,
he
do
to
make
the find
Holy the
of
the
bring him his body a
Spirit into
to a
temple, Ghost. In healing greatest protection
FOR
for
the can
eth
out
the
Spirit
from
the
The
go wherever All fear."
To
receive
of
by
life.
In
Spiritual life is added abundant" Spirit "life more no
mind
is awakened
and
that
The
fountain
we
if
receive Jesus
Faith
is
no
forward
go
to
accept atonement
the
world."
We
think
to
social
and
In we
the
pride
have
to
found Christ
freedom
consult, in
Christ
forth
of the
to
Love
never
eyes
with.
contend
of We
We
offend,
are more
free. and
for We more
our
the of us.
please
to
the
world,
have All
gists, drugthis
We nurses'
to
conform
to
methods
the
to
us
is left free
have
We
is
have
bills, no
fellowship have liberty the
is
is in
wonderful
atonement.
of
drugs, which have
lead
to
Man
and
to
realize
impulse
The
much.
have
friends
The
healing in wisdom to reject "the power a great deal is required of
We
only.
Jesus, and
Thousands for
no
will
love, there
consult to physicians removed healing in the atonement. through druggists' bills, no physicians' bills, no no one
He
no
and
nurses,
can
that
Son.
redeems.
love.
of
so
to
the
Without
Love
manners
world,
of the
we
disease.
we
compels.
world
relations.
and
needs.
our
believe
we
and
love
sin. never
and
customs
If
pity, called
the world
owe
all
for
and
heal.
nor
reject the gift gives to us the
or
friends
exacts,
never
of life,
source
give all that
Father
to
or
compassion against disease or
enforces,
of the
sin
without
wisdom,
strive
the
of
its fountain
the
for
save
unbelief.
of
disease.
of
gift
free
are
we
it, is also taken
to
power
from
and
gift is love,
greatest to
the
when
Spirit is to healing by the natural spirit but Divine the in healing by The (Spiritual life)is given.
man
sin
; and
pertains
cast-
away
children
the
the
from
redeem
from
us
;
hearts
our
and will open, believe. faith to
ever
have to
is taken
consciousness
a
draw
is
we
died
redeem
to
can
in
"perfect love
; for
us
Jesus,
Christ
in
free
contagion
overpower all that
healed
be
made
calls
199
BODY.
AND
are
reigns and
added
an
fear
which
of death
us.
We God
Christ
of
fears
fear
from
life.
physical
and
SOUL
SPIRIT,
scanty
dollars often food
are means
and
paid daily to physicians and who (for the victims it) pay It means clothing. pain, and
200
GOD*S
suffering, and of the
away
and a
heart
God
comfortable
live
for
strength The
to
intended
suitable
world
brings
into
us
without
bondage.
We
life is
everybody, Worldly pleasenobody." tinual fault-finding and trying to please. Take Oh! the of dress. and sin, in bondage dress.
Some
one
should
have
beautiful
created
and
away? the
gave
Why
-
give
beautiful
intended He
intend
becomes
to
intellect the
weave
to
sin
for
But
use.
has
man
order
to
or
poor often of flowers
she
establish
should
a
devil.
the
that
we
design not
costs
become
perfect life.
It is because
of
an
would
ficial arti-
an
too
that
cost
in
for
large
our
for
much
child
a
child
His
of
extremely
so
object of ridicule,
That the
set
it things, so that the to enjoy even
them possess of bread;
to
the
rob
he
question of
vanity
fabrics, if
beautiful
It is not God that asks a possess. without anything beautiful, or to dress that
the
and
carve
to
plain and
the
them
bouquet
a
go
man
Must
use?
cqn-
He which gems be taken all this
wear
all beautiful upon for Christ's followers
would
of God
to
flowers, when
which cities
man
and
price
a
beautiful
things,
one
intend
God
not
please
"
use?
sinful
"Does
me,
and
gems,
for did
asked
ment. raiworld.
the
**try to
and
give
and
of
fear
us
food, if
will
for He ways, will bring food
toil
give
good
and
His
live
can
we
will
He
so.
clothing, to
daily toil, and
it
ness is "foolish-
which
that
taking
the
and
homes,
many for pay
according
Therefore
HEALING
in
never
home,
and
turn
we
OF
ache, bread
daily
s^iri."
LAWS
is the
work of
effects
sin
of
pride,
in
and
has mammon-worshiping man these them. rests things, that a curse placed upon upon in it is a sin block" And to-day to place '^a stumbling result another's by putting on anything that would way, in the spirit of covetousness, or or pride, or foolish envy, honest soul. Were it not that to an vanity, or bondage
the
has
Satan
and while the
taken of the
children
clothing, Aaron law
of
that
value
monetary
them
from
We
King. for
was
sin,"
the
might
Master
allowed Jemis
us,
the came
we
most
"under
them
for
exquisiteraiment the
dress
beautiful
all have
intended
all
would
law
of
use.
as
gems But '*under
grace"
in
ood's
^^"1
brass, and
of blue,
r^d,
dyed Aaron's Lord
which
scarlet
"
work, also
and
diamond
and
jasper;
a
grave
a
Remember,
Him
where
the
Lord, and
ple pur-
cunning gold, and pure and a sapphire
of
and
amethyst
an
of
plate
the
to
children
true
ye follow
Christ,
of this
lord,
of
pure and
an
onyx gold, and
it shall
world,
wo
are
a
while
that
God,
Master,
our
streets city whose despiser of the beautiful
in
no
blue
for
be
forehead."
gladly persecutions with
holiness
and
emerald;
ligure; an agate, and, finally, "a
it,
upon Aaron's
upon
"
And
the
chains
and
stones
skins
linen, with
twined
fine
rams'
before
"gold
use
"sardius, topaz, carbuncle,
a
and
and
onyx
appear
to
and
tabernacle.
the
of
linen, and
fine
hair
goats'
to
Moses
commanded and
of
making
dress, in
healing
scarlet, and
and
purple
the
for
of
curtains
and
stones,
onyx
laws
the
in
day to-
we
and
poverty
only preparing to reign gold, paved with are will ever things of God
enter.
God's
the
from until
music, of
laws are
time
"the
All
of souls,
and
God;
attained
by
shall
beauty
all communion all the
in
morning
souls
Lamb."
the
is manifested
beauty
redeemed
the
and
of
sense
stars
together"
sang
sing of colors, the
acquirements
of
fixed
tion; crea-
'*the
are
same
His
all of
laws
of Moses song all harmony of
result
of
fixed
the
human for
knowledge spirit,soul and
body. But
remember
that
until
"bom
will again" man creations (which appeal to the worship the beautiful ever of the and the lusts of the pride of life) instead eyes when For God Creator. the Egyptains" "spoiled the idolatrous of their silver, for the worshipers gold and sake of his chosen the Egyppeople, the Israelites (whom tians had first spoiled), He that the natural only proved heart could the not wisely use precious things of earth; turned their for they soon God, the Creator, worship from to the that their beautiful things created, and demanded we
are
"
"
of
ornaments
calf,"
to-day
which we
gold
they find
the
should
might same
be
molded
worship idolatry
instead of
the
into of
natural
"molten
a
God.
And
heart,
to
these
worship And
gift of
any
creations
the
is
"gods"
heart will
but
God,
of
ANV
beautiful
until
not
SOUL
SPIRIT,
YOB.
20S
instead, of
changedican
continue
of
gold, "gods"
BODY.
dress,
CreaJtor.
wisely
use
man
make
to
and
the
himself
for of
"gods"
and
men
women.
So, thanks
be
and
the
and
strength sinner
the
death, and
to
In
death.
sin,
from
first-fruits of
of
and
depend
to
upon that
the
Spirit
with
all
of Jesus.
We
so
anything
divine
life,and
Jesus, are
more
been
arise
to
we
strength
who
have
never
we
to the
say
walk.**
and
The
one
The
must
have have
healer,
"without
or
faith
to
are
for
faith the it is
or
one
with
to
there be
natural
*'In the
to
conscious
most
the
faith
our
be
for no
must
in name
weakness,
our
the
strength
paralyzed,
healed,
impossible
by
is centered
and
can
Paul
healing
the
Those
ourselves
to
with
mind
learned
not
weakness."
greater
the
plete, com-
Spirit and
strength. paralysis, or raised
from
strength, they have natural strength. According can
we
in
of divine
helplessness,
faith
the
realize
the
it, but
from
for
We
of
Spirit, is
The body. is in healing all for things,
body
do
to
look
the
and
Saviour
strength, perfect
instantly
continued
the
is made
conscious
healed
the
all
from
Saviour
of the
and
expect
the of
natural
of
ask
the
upon
''My strength
It is
or
learn
We
disease.
keeps
spirit,soul
redemption
the
and
through
work
of
lies tlie power in the atonement
Healing
sanctifies
from
Healing in the of turning a his soul saving
atonement
sin.
the
soul
a
save
power and
way
the
The
redemption
i e., the
shall
sanctification
is
converteth
of sins."
his
in
the truth.^^
beliefof
which
way,
every that
Spirit
"salvation
for
'*He
glorious
of
healing
the
gives
this
error
man
give
the forter Comway every the of God children
multitude
a
us
the
from
separate
and
hide
gives
brother
peace. of his
error
shall
atonement
from
joy
from
life, to
and
healing in the spirit,the broken
In
body.
the
of the
power wounded
the
wrecked into
comes
for the
heals
which
atonement, heart
God
to
who
the have
from
longof
tliat
weakness
of
the
be
it unto
us.
so
others, but "Faith have
please God,"
some
Healing." faith, for
qod's
^"A
If
have
we
the
of in
If
we
Jesus
of
healed their
by
was
faith
What
in
apostolic the
of
it
No,
the
the
is
are
that
and it
is
and
the
origin
not
the
the
Word
of to
man.
truth
it
of
power whom
God,
bibles,
many
and
without
Ghost,
known
are
age
gives
Ghost,
the
there
of
a
God's
We
book
can
separate
from
told
receive
But
value,
tlie
Holy
the
Holy
understand
nor
all
that
Bible;
its
by
read
not
Is
man.
gives
written to
it
by
that
wisdom
an
depend? are
called"
"so
faith.
Christian
the
Book,
and
we
nor
than
healed
same
should
we
doctrine.
older
books
many
Spirit believe/'
people.
a
"
mere
I
constitutes
it
which
the
of
ongin
by
"
upon
His
disciples
What
No,
tures, Scrip-
the
'*Lord,
heal
can
believe
it
us
The
period?
a
doctrines
the
is
it
of
say,
God.
we
do
give
to
will
discipleship? Is
ing heal-
minutes, we
testimony
Jesus
we
of
and
Jesus;
age?
age
body,
few
a
will
He
the of
faith
constitutes
for
When
promises,
work
the
God
in
will.
so
take
to
hereafter
we
He
the
by
it
if
the
healing
the
have
can
willing
take
^to "
what
do
it
hour
^this
'*now,"
are
that for
we
will
healing.
"
body,
God
that
of
faith
no
minute,
one
laws
other
writings
it
XL
LECTURE
'THE
Whence
God." whom
in
I
it is
faith
the
world
in
the
Therefore of
sin
was
of
sinful
His
Son,
Ghost
the
gift
On
the
cross
sin
from
the this
which
this '*The
of
is
It
a
the
lips
the
Holy
offers, Father The knew servant.
of
prayer of
any
the
in
of
redemption
and
of
faith
of
the
He
the
14
knew
of
prayer
of
forms of
Ghost
faith."
of
other
ceives re-
is
It prayer.
includes
Jesus,
by the
made
dwells
breast
through
"
"the
the
gift of
that
salvation
through
man
Spirit
God of
work
the
Son.
before
Him
faith,
Holy
*'the
pray
wonderful
a
contending
Whoever "
name
is
"It
ask.
whose is
It
Ghost."
the
Spirit,
soul
the
would
Himself
Jesus
what
in
made
faith,"
all
it from
Holy
the
through
**Spirit
the
is
the
Son
was
said,
Son
to
power
by
prayed
distinguishes
prayer
only
a
is
the
Father was
death.
the
and
Father
the
of
from
man
the
man,
and
sickness,
sin,
himself
which
faith,"
He
gift
within
holds
"
of
curse
the
Himself
Son
His
and
the
Jesus
of
Jesus
liberating
and
of
and
Calvary,
God
of
19.
:
redeem
gift
Father
the of
disease,
and
The
5
upon
might
He
Christ,
in
was
body
took
Jesus
of
faith
The
with
the
flesh.
the
in
and
flnished."
of
creation
very
flesh, that
disease,
and
2
Son,
Without
**
Cor.
Himself,'^
involved.
God
likeness
unto
beloved
**God
God."
please
to
in
faith
Him.'*
ye
God
of
**Have
My
is
hear
pleased;
impossible
reconciling faith
well
am
**This
said,
Father
the
And
faith
The
said,
Jesus
Son.
His
in
manifested
was
faith?
of
gift
the
cometh
FAITH.
OF
GIFT
Son He the
was
took work
in
the
upon which
Father,
the
Himself He
for
came
to
(205)
He
said
form
of
earth
to
206
god's
had
do, and
He
he
forth
went
faith
earth,
in had
He
So
He
the
God
went
Jesus
He
Jesus
up Christ bodies
raised mortal
may of man,
the
and
What
faith
that
carr^
by
which
faith
that
is
*'If the dwell
death
Spirit in
also
the
out we
of
Him
that
quicken
your
in
the
on
He
you,
dwelleth
planned
will
the
from
up
the
even
which
He
that
had
He
of mankind.
shall
dead
Spirit
His
by praise God,
We
says, dead
the
from
from
in
death,
Word
dwelling in-
He
sicknesses
unto
God's
up
He
take
and
the
proved His take can My life." the passed through His life again. up His body the sins of
man
bearing
cross,
obedient
And
raised
would
He
lifted
Me."
after
Therefore,
through that proved
unto
that
it.
work,
Jesus
men
infirmities
became
the
said, "No
God,
the
the
cross.
that
when
to
world,
the
all
death,
of
do
to
do
said, '*If I be
He
in
would
He
God.
draw
faith
portals
that
of
healing
of
fearlessly,
will
I
faith
faith
presence God when
in
laws
you.''
redemption
plan. this
receive
may
is a spiritual power, a Spirit? Faith spiritual Man is law, continually in operation in the life of man. tality. of God's creation in the faith, created a hope of immorAnd Jesus to to bring that immortality came are light. We continually living by faith, faith in one faith in everything another, appertaining to earthly life. wonderful
We
"
live
not
can
It
domestic natural force make and nature
A
faith.
child
has
an
])Ower of
when
life;but
his
in
it
ever
intellectual it.
of
faith, but
he
knowledge,
Knowledge
and
boundary
knowledge. knowledge, faith
faith
faith
of
but may
my
be
he
to
loses
define
sight
conceive
may is
never
is
tries
come
passed,
belief
in
and
knowledge.
my
in it is
contact; no
brother trust
it, tries the
of
in
use
is
of
the
it, without never
faith.
for when
longer faith to-day is him.
to
nature
somewhat
to compelled because knowledge
faith
My
he
force,
Man
intellectual
that
exercise
we
and the word, exercises having heard in every is used phase of life,in all business, social Faith the and to pertains religious circles. It is an unconsciously exercised spirit of man.
faith, without it.
except
To-morrow
the but not
FOE
We
believe,
must
SOUL
SPIKIT,
even
as
If we knowledge. is simply the met that we know its of we nothing the testimony of another, take
to
drug, for
and
for
that upon is the same.
us
else and meet
mind
thing,
or
centered do
it, our
faith.
faith, if
His
the
we
and
the
drug;
order
faitii
in
mind
to person from body everya
He
our
of
ever
off
from
lead
will
possibility
may
is
mind
beliefs, and
The
other every mind of is
person. faith; but man
take
or
have
to
one
our
natural
by faith,
but
force
our
that
will
vrilL
so
Our
take
We
about
from
all
time
drug.
faith
In
off
is
that
us,
it
faith
drug,
a
upon
is taken
Jesus
exercising worldly thoughts,
in
take
we
one
child; for
nothing
effect
place it upon disappoint may
he
or
faith
know
207
BODY.
little
a
have
never
faith
AND
to
us
of
one
every and
the of Saviour have requirements faith in God, rests in our faith willingness to take our else and from everything and everybody place it in God. Father in the Jesus' faith was knew implicitly. He have faith in. Jesus there was to nothing in humanity to
meet
tested
and
us
the
'
experienced
flesh; and The
therefore,
us,
world, tuUl,
and
that
liis
own
then
ours;
will,
or
that
will
it is
noty
there
only
a
accept
of
of
and
of
of faith.
to
If
we
the man
but
that
him.
will
the
for
show
himself,
for
the If
Son,
man,
unto
care
from
Jesus?
the
and
spiritualfaith
this
dress
question
faith
our
unto
sufficient
question
the
The
Son.
God
Father
to
in
God."
take
Jesus
power is a
God
the
we
the
reveal
higher
a
in
faith
spiritis not
see
we
both
is to
have
must
the
of
hear
to
is. Will
it in
know
God
of
If
place
can
we
faith
faith
says, "Have tells us
Father
with
he
He
faith
the
which "
our
^whether faith
be
can
we
which
truth, life,and against wisdom, laws the of God, must suffer; as we everything that is of must to the heart bring disappointment opposed to God would have and the So if we man. a satisfying faith reap of faith, we learn must to place it "in glorious reward spiritand in truth,'' only. that He called Himself God When might a people unto we
naturally
reveal
faith
exercise
unto
is
mankind,
He
called
"faithful
Abraham."
208
Abraham
could but
power, IS
the
LAWS
never
have
OF
the
feeling
because
he
HEALING
placed
his
of
presence
mankind
with
same
God,
in
for
GOD^S
faith
an
unseen
that
And
power. Man has
to-day.
has
in
it
faith
no
felt His
lieved benor presence, But His word. soul who has felt the every presence knows liow of God, it in is, to havelaith afterward, easy the unseen of the faith in had Spirit. Abraham power God and turned of wisdom to the for guidance in source all
Abraham
things.
record,
to
make
never
the
was
"the
of faith,"
prayer.
whom
we
showing
that
first, of
have ham Abra-
idols and from accepted of God, and had turned The heathen wilderness of Israelites, in the worship. miraculous sin, experienced healings for forty years, in "the of faith," and whenever they believed were prayer obedient But when their lives with to God. they blended idolati*ous suflFered the nations, they lost their faith and All through the Scriptures we read this penalty of sin. record dual of man's experience. God healed of The the lepers, disease, cleansed prophets the dead, through faith in God. and raised Jesus proved the the of His faith maimed, by healing raising the had
dead, the
in
Therein
etc.
Son,
idols
But
We
the go
and
and
world
not
lost
realize
would
man
he does, for he way suffer and to God or
which
drugs Satan
But doctrine
they
may
heal." that
of
says,
Baal, become
To-day God
hold
now
has
the we
do
given
sight no
of
cure
that
froiii his still
man
healing of disease His gift from one
the
divine
for
sin
all
law, that its
or
ties. penal-
medication
out.
the
"Blend and
sin, tha;t
Father
is drug for sin. Take of the drugs out violate the in not temple of God would have remedy, except to no the '*false hope" die, without even
license
a
be
can
and
of the
again
once
the* away withdrawn
never
has
there
do
idolatry,
has
man
faith"
'^without
taken
love
the
man
unbelief
of
have
worships to-day, by faith; for God children.
fallen
redeem
to
These
idols.
manifested
was
pray
doctrine
appointed just what us,
and
use
means, we
with
the
drugs,
that
kill
but
Jesus
deadly
the
over
of
not
like
with
it for
any
to
this
temple
purpose
we
gob's
^\ft
God
*His
and
have
way
of
life.
not
have
Why faith
into
is
a
heart
His
Son.
We
never
can
and
receive
When
find
readily book
in
are
one
and
involved
in
be
can
will
found
on
concerning subtlety of our use everything accept of In
Jesus.
the
doubt
and us
In
we
**Yes.'*
Ask
him
sealed truth
very we
in
the
be
it
faith
our
of Jesus,
blood.
honor
of God
dence greater evi-
given Satan
to
does
not
of the
intellect
make
doubt
the
will
our
use
care
Jesus
to
comes
than
man
argument us
we
the man
His
No
it.
ever
yet in
will
and
doubt
when
place
with
of that
Word
of
intellect, the
own
are
all
the
that
will
is
of
body from few to-day who
the
but of
and if
Testament
promises
faitli,"for the Jesus, he
and
believes
of
salvation
our
have Ask
will in
God
"the
of for
from
sin,
Yet
disease.
sick. he
will
is the
New
find
"the prayer pray God faith in has
to
in
know
is the
The
will
that
is born
traditions; education, our thought, our his in deceive to anything us, power will I "I will from believe God; saying,
redemption
it; and
He
Son."
children.
earth's and
own
prevent His
every earth to
iu
and
We
still
Scriptures.
use
open
promise
a
sin, but
could
but
Him.
God
to
yet
believe,
we
he
Nazareth,
it, and
power doubts the
else
what
The
us
and
word;
it
Testament
it
give
God
faith
His
at
doubt
mankind,
to
Satanic
mankind
that
and
New
in
grace,
read
we
weakness
in
God
We
somehow
intellect
Son.
another.
and
in
erow
take
is involved
a
we
to
with
of
through the spirit of
ever
must
we
faith
it difficult
The promises. life gift of His
Love
might
His
his
the
He
it, but
to
can
His
into
is
seek
soul
liuman
life that
faith
we
the
grow
by day,
of
enemy which
of
of
God,
is filled
No
and
trust
of
Another
through
cultivation
grace, do that
we
then, day of God knowledge We
gave
might
we
through
through
and
us,
died
know
to
want
disease, difficulties, that
salvation.
Jesus
will
we
overcome
things/'
into
gift
grace.
our
to
Jesus
grace
healing
then
attainments,
grace,
into
grow Grace
of
Him,
faith
human
in
grow
in
"all
overcome
belief
His
faith
anxiety?
poverty,
laws
we
the
faith
one
if he
perhaps prayer
say, of
SriRlT,
"FOR.
faith'*
tlie
for
say
Jesus, but Jesus
the
heart
his
from
healing
think
was
is also
Son of
in
the
tested
disease, and
and
and
faith
in
not
faith
in
God
and
why body
the
ing heal-
faith
that
That
of
tests
in
God
gave become
might
we
the
from
Jesus
flesh!
the
that
bodies,
and
spiritual, intellectual, in given to mankind
The were
in
the
of
surest
Tested
is
is tested
Him
the
spirit,soul,
in
body. Faith
God for
be
must
be
may
If
full
trials
as
in
by fire,'*that
the
knowledge
Therefore,
the
opportunities
us.
the
show
wisdom
have
we
of
keeping
"tried
revealed
repeated
love.
a
flesh.
the
faith
our
not
can
have
our
redemption
of penalty of sin, is one mankind gives to-day. His body to redeem our members of His body. life of Christ physical
atonement,
They
He
it.
the
the
Silence!
flesh, and
in
2ll
BODY.
sick.
iie does.
have
they
AND
the
of
that
tested
SOUL
the
given all Spirit, looking
salvation
sin
from
and of
care
of infinite mercy flesh the into the
Great
the
to
for
Physician
disease, and
and
of
found
are
complaining un-
faith to become patient; looking for our the substance of things hoped for, we in a condition to are We receive help, for both temporal and spiritual needs.. of grace" boldly; for "the now plead at the **throne may for with intercession Spirit itself maketh groanings us, and
which
be
not
can
silently-expressed aloud. **according
to
the
of
prayer
confidence
have
we
And
uttered."
faith
our
toward
whether
heart, will
God
it be
things that are pleasing of faith is inseparable from trust. according to the will of God, and never
cry, **Lord denied; for Jesus The
God
great
is
found light," He hopelessly sick; knew and
His the
"out
me
to
and
laws
for
words,
you
and
leave
all
in
so,
healing
'^live and
soul the of move
me
for
into and
prayer
sinner,"
a
God, His
body;
have
is
lost.
was
His
in
marvelous a
of another pra}^er the body, I was and
praj' with
results
when
do
we
trust
which
that
of darkness
through the
prayer Now
us."
unto
Faith
on
save
Him
sick
me
mercy
came
I found
merciful;
love, called
have
our
in prayer, '^because in His sight." The
those
God.
voice
or
the
offer
we
your
sinner, who
healed, being
GOD*S
212
in and
for
freedom
God's
faith, born
of
life
my led
has
of the soul, spiritual quickening So tiiat in body. ment, moconsciously, that the feeling of trust presence, has been the inspiration prayer,
the
I know
did and
the
brought
God/'
that
of
And
since.
ever
me,
impulses, earthly desires, of
Selfish
faith.
in
God,
day by day, until daily living. But
the
prayers
HEALING
OF
LAWS
His
tender
"life of
the
born
prayer
mercy, has come be-
faith"
random
of
thoughtlessness,
or
prayers,
prayers
of
not
are
"duty,"
or
doubtful not repetitions,'* or can prayers, but bring spiritual unbelief only. "JfcTj/" with God have the no except they are power have refused the of faith. of faith Many prayer "vain
of prayers be answered, prayers prayers because
faith
idolatrous
of
in
etc. church, pastor, my my of is not heals, "Whatsoever
LIFE
THE
the "The faith
OF
prayers
of
my
prayer is sin."
of
faith"
friends,
only
FAITH,
OR
LIVING
FAITH
BY
AND
GIVING
BY
FAITH.
less understood important by the or of professing Christians than faith. **Without faith it is impossible to please God." Without faith it is **the prayer of sanctified, or to pray impossible to become faith," or to preach Christ's gospel.
Nothing majority
To first turns
the
is
believe
more
in
the
heart
that
God
is the prayer soul jbhat every
answers
And for a life of faith. requirement all worldly dependence, God from to trust alone, has and ever of "food raiment," through whatpromise sure God
channel
father, stranger.
sister, brother,
mother, But
it, whether
direct
may
to
turn
to
God
from
son,
the
from
labor,
acquaintance, world
Ineans
or
to
physical, intellectual, and spiritual life, with all that He shall as pertains to it, to be used by Him and not direct, and we please. In every condition as may
give
God
all
our
FOR
circumstance
But
all
may freedom
we
and
SOUL
SPIRIT,
wonderful
this
live
Christ,
iu
213
BODY.
AND
if
life of God
trust
we
lessness fear-
only.
spirit into the body, soul, and become Master's to vineyard to preach the gospel, and "the they offscouring of all things" (1 Cor. 4:13), then which "preach the gospel must [needs] live of the gospel" that And to live of the some one gospel by faith means faith. whoever And also of the must give gospel by live by faith, must would to first learn give by faith, to and all earthly posgive his time, talents, salary, wages, sessions if
and The
inheritances,
first step toward
giving by hold
faith.
the
to
Lord. life
living the
is that
faith
of
"steward" be a faithful may and a.ud church God/ s poor, emd give to Oo(Ps in his possession God's for God, so long means
God,
gives cheerfully 1
enter
to
are
we
Cor.
16
raiment,
One
God,
to
2.
But
to
and
for
all
:
live
hath
God
**as
life
the
of
for still as
he
him."
prospered food
faith, for
of
and
to apostle, according Matt. commands Christ's 10:7-10) apostles (see hands all the Lord's first give absolutely into must we and without we we or scrip, before possess, purse go out For in it is impossible live the life of faith. trust to can have the Lord only, to provide, if we kept back part of the price. Acts 5:3. And that for to know giving by the will of God we are the support of His church and His gospel and His worthy 5 : 1-10) instead of to the creeds and (1 Tim. gospels poor of men, and is to bring this world's to unworthy poor, of faith *'the witness the and of the Spirit" into power
things,
for
own
of
faith
God, of
"in
is
be
And
tried
many
that
have
how faith?
many For
there
is also
of
(Ex. 25:2) the man
How
sin."
through ^rmn^r by faith" until must
lives.
many faith, believing," for
fdith?
an
individual
conscious,
our
as
His
God.
Lord
giveth
it
asked,
*'God said:
the
have the
ask
power God for
there a
"Whatsoever
never
is not
the
a
life
wisdom
of
bea**living
can
giving by faith. loveth
ask
to courage of living the
And
both
cheerful
giver;" for offering of every
**Bring me an willingly with his heart'' still asking of and are
And us,
since "But
so
how
OOD^S
1\V
do
live
you
the
as
plain
as
aid
all
to
serve
HEALING
faith?
we
rent
honest
wisely), as well the Lord's vineyard, according to the Word
who
seek God.
of
which
givers" (who worthy workers
all
the
live
to
yourselves make
will
illustrations
"cheerful
help
supply
you
etc.,"we
money, by a few
to
as
do
How
can
give
to
OP
food, clothing,
secret
may
life of
the
with
LAWS
The
life
seek in
faith,
of
life of
perfect
faith
advertises only of God; never the plate, or begs in any but its wants, never passes way, that in the heart believes preach the gospel tliey which (of Christ, not of men) shall live of the gospel; for if the the hearts to give in love, the preaching fails to open of
asks
never
whole
work
The live
"
failure, and
a
God of
any "donation
man^s
of
of
of the
on
the
the
take
short,"
if you run the iimer
we
short
the
giver.
let the
must moment
07ie
And
from
of
of
doing if the
larder
to
but
if
until
His
servants
divine low faith
in love
church,
the Lord/'
unto
admiration,
credit,"
work
the
love
divine
from
heart
His
run
God's
of
human
refused; for
the
of
from
'*store
be
instead
impersonally,
of
must
sanctuary
come
pity,
accept such
receiving as "the of question sonal perof cnurch, or personal
supporters
be
not
can
to
which
"
spiritof "giving
not
all offers
Hence,
truth.
the
those
trust
or
the
the
and
they
of the
of
part
place of Giving by faith must affection, friendship, or
of
giving
servants
lives of
love
reason
parties," etc., where
emulation
have
this
For
the
into
and
teach
and
preach
divine
same
methods
support" may
who
faith.
of
not
bring
faith, is to
they preach, the has given them.
is
those
of
object
life of
the
whom
is
great
man
any
or
"call
the me
on
fail to
we
open
it
gives to God personally, we
the
low,
of
/or
turn
And
wisdom.
man's
life
and
neart
^^mn^rruns rather than also, to
of
confines its important of all, so long as the church giving to the thoughts of a personal support, for its pastors it robs itselfof the power and to let its **lightso teachers, most
shine"
that
it may
reach
out
into
the
darkness
all that is opposed conquer" illustration of healing is an This book the pastors and out has reached beyond and
to
"
to
of
"
the the
teachers
ing "conquer-
light. love and
that the
individual
church,
still sit in
who church
includes
which and
church,
he in
placed Lord
(as
an
His
any
for
faith
of
the
for either
"
world's
long of
and
His
to
all
that
be
used
of
will
is the
to
wisdom
they and who
as
up
of
vs.,
say,
Word
can't of
way," church out"
months,
after
being
but
they never Ghost in Holy baptized into
And
believe God.
other
in the "hold
sprinkling:
life.
to
Lord's
who
creeds,
resurrection
if it is the
have,
not
man-made
baptism, by some
joy of the obedierityand are "I
death;"
the
and
be
must
we
"
*or
are
"sanctification
obedience
We
God.
months
for
the
of
refuse
we
God,
please
humility or Spirit,"
or
conscience
as
"climb
baptism," the
death
even
of the
that
of God, and If we are baptized into His baptized
Christians
Word,
God's
unbelievers,
faith,"
try
fail to
themselveSy until Christ's
Lord
giving "gift
or
other
any Word
ordinances
honest
"convicted
or
the
satisfy (?). For as
surely
against
living
the
to
etc., and
Christ,
receive
Christ
the
supper, will we
expense
Lord"
work
gospel" of Christ, ing only) the feedand worthy poor.
servants
the
of
those
to
work.
with
of
chief
the
of
215
tidings"
giver" gives to the by the gift of faith,
knowledge or obedience to requires truth." the through
conscience
"glad
incidental
wisdom
sprinkled,
spread
treasury
receive
"buried
BODY.
it is the
of its faithful
knows, "the
for
To
"the
cheerful
"the
the
And
for
clothing
When
AND
publish
to
darkness.
give
to
SOUL
SPIRIT,
"0B.
Not
the in
of
same
healing one
of
by
these
receive the Ghost *'honest"('?)proselytes will ever Holy abiding guest as long as they disbelieve, or disfjute, an as of God, and substitute in its portion of the Word any And however "honest"(?) place the false teachings of men. Word disbelievers these of the think disputers and may in the sight of humble, themselves, or they are not honest God, or of God's children; for every intelligent, obedient obedient and believes, honest, humble, spirit gladly it is truth of Scripture as gladly receives, every soon as soul and heart. presented to the much of so lies the Herein secret *'honest"(?) seeking "the second after "sanctification," blessing," etc., without
god's
*l\fe
laws
of
healing
the world, before receiving, or being able to manifest any in the Ghost." An Holy or lasting, abiding power *'joy unbelieving, doubting, disobedient, selfish soul will never receive the within itself, Holy Ghost, or sanctification and it however brilliantly even reflectthat joyfully may of those who liave others, while in the presence light from received the heavenly gift; for when they leave truly find that there is no their they light in themselves. presence, herein will And give our own we experience of the impossibility of "living of the gospel" to-day, except we whole also preach the gospel of faith, as it was preached the days of apostles of Christy from by the disciples and the "falling away" of the down Pentecost churches, to the of their candlestick" and the "removal light and in of the those And, as Holy Ghost. "days of power miracle," healings, and proofs casting out of devils, were of discipleship, even must also, prove our so disciplewe, all "miracles of and other of by ship, by healing," **gifts of unbelief and the spirit" required for this idolatry age "
of
And
men.
glorious
life of
establishing Holy
Ghost
First, without God
could
faith,
"the to
not
instruction
the
for
do
this
the have
all
lay
we
church
of
of
our open God" wherever
who
seek
the
experiences in sent by the
work. "miracles been
of
healing"
established
the
anywhere
church
of
without
beggings for its support. received who have Second, the great majority of those remembered the Giver not blessings for soul or body, have thanks. We than of these blessings with anything more but of those of the able to give writing, not are poor, been the unto Lord, had they not kept back by the spirit of covetousness. Oh, how pitiful to see souls sealing their avarice and doom for the "second death," through own labor in the is the This harder part of our hypocrisy! and souls life of faith, to to sure going everlasting see led twin and destruction, vipers of avarice by these "I can Avarice not or give to the Lord hypocrisy. says, Then work." to His Hypocrisy says to Avarice, "You can deceive (and perhaps yourself ) by 'j^roneighbors your collections
or
god's
^%
the
life
fearlessness.
of
which
God, the
alone
**crumbs faith
of
lesson
well,
life of
faith
for
giving.
than
more
of whom
all for to
faith
love
the
only
not
it also
truth.
For
tests
10
reward
the
:
the
40-42
urgent
sympathy,
or
regard the
creeds
of
Christ, but
or
feed
to
them, while to
aslced
25
the
solicitations
whether
of
and
Matt.
popularity
These men
:
than
the
to
truth
church,
fail to
"
brethren,
out
into
any whom
by contributing
who
some
receive
all
collection
their
true
of
Chrisfs
fact
or
that
classes
plate Christ of
shown
brethren.
that But
through ignorance vanity, human as tear
or up from
with down
or
has their
charity the
duty,
that
sent
human where
great
to
or
little God's
them" among light of the church
the
to
their
standing
are
we
Christ
freely
up
professes
of
church
necessity,
organization The
soul
35-46
build
come
see
give
dictate, and
*'come
"
who
the
and
may
it is to
persons and
other every to contribute.
love
the
"
to
as
church.
and
giving is in giving to give indiscriminately
persons of because
life of
give
to
large majority
for
most
the
ability,"but
every
wherever give, through custom, is presented give to publicly, never where they are left free to manifest and love for Christ His gospel. Matt.
tlie brethren
also
those
tests
who
In
the
sow.
truth, but
that
life
learned
of the
their
of
freedom
who
support
"beyond
even
they
as
life of
the
are
sake
perfect
blessed
givers"
of
The
tell all
to
more
the
have
we
truths
table." of
living,includes
**cheerful
give
may
and
when
it is
mammon,
accordingly The
"For
few
A
for
the
rich, for
man's
trust
hesitate
not
faith
the
the
rich
And
man.
back
keep
the
perfect
will
we
that
receive/*
fall from
of
healing
please
to
life of
fear
of
Never
save,
that
is the
the
from
laws
"
clothe
light creeds,
they are majority of
attend the of Christ, church and people, who do ''because give they live by j^aith.^^ never give anything of the else, necessity everywhere giving knowledge proves law of We have this nessed witvital, spiritual giving. upon the vain after healing, holiness struggles of so many which and sanctification, while withholding the very means of alone (in their cases) could possibly bring the "witness all
the
EOR
the
Spirit"
eyes
of
blind
until
sanctified
and
he
bountifully." continually all and
Cor.
9
And
6.
:
received
all,
of
also sparreap ingly; also shall reap this promseen ise
those
to
have
who
sown
harvest
But,
of
and
so
has
have
given
sparingly
God nothing for does does not not promise and give this spiritual harvest who to any give "grudgingly, or of necessity" (because before the plate is placed because the subtheir scription eyes, or for the pastor's salary is begged, or forced from does reward not them, through pride or fear). No; God in either temporal spiritual things, except man or any he purposeth Thousands in his heart" for God. "as give as
receive
who
that
soul
those
Christ; from
wholly
sanctified.
fulfilled, in ilie lives of every church
be
can
liave
we
the
open
ourselves, but
man
also
the
into
come
no
soweth
2
to
deceive
possessions are sparingly shall which soweth bountifully
which
219
led
feel
may
and
God;
BODY.
we
his
"he
And
AND
We
men.
deceive
not
SOUL
souls, that
their
in
these
can
we
SPIRIT,
to
unwillinglv
^ut
reward." that
Lord,
offering reveal
lives
of those
have
professed
case
has
while
there
have
is
gift
offered
to the
according
a
the
to
wisdomand
which
gives it. startling illustrations have
who
out"
one
has the
"receive
never
out," and
"come from
in
the
world.
the
full
those But
in
soul
filled
held
heart in the or sway the soul self-deceived
of
claims
with
the
Holy
or
who no
Ghost, life, may
been.
In
have the
and
that
these
of God," experiences to '*the Church been led most by the fact, that people suppose life of faith is a sort of charitable dependency; feel and the dependents should great express humble thanksgiving, ^ersona%, to ail who give
giving
that
to
been
great
a
'*come
covetousness
however
and
to
men,
voluntary
is blessed
heart
could
barren
creeds
where
of the
purpose We
we
the
to
remember,
very them shelter
given world" creatures
"The
or
food
or
raiment.
fortunes in talents, and up "for Christ's sake," should of
Those
'*the
good
never
be
who
things
of the
King"
never
beg
for
of this
considered
charity.
children
have
bread.
as
220
god's
Oh,
hear
all
Of
faith,
fear
**the
who
are
the
laws;
man's
wishes the
of
the
preach
the
fear
man's
without
and
the
life
of
faith,
as
of
The
faith.
church;
and
received
by
laws
only
and
God,
gift and
a
the
say, is no
the
the
open faith
of
all
convict
child
true
Living, and
faith.
of
in
bondage
money,'* still profess godliness. giver." Finally, the evangelists the
and
knowledge
of
wisdom
been
is for
such
thing
in
faith,
or periences ex-
to
the
also,
a
to
love
of
cheerful have
must
teach
to
His
above
**the
teachers
and
life
given
serve
loveth
"God
the
blind
to
of
"This
the
May
have
"will"
be
Giving; and
faith
who
those
of
only
its fulness,
Christ, and
can
name,
of all who
eyes
in
up
His
in
gifts
by not
Gospel creeds, thoughts, man's the consulting opinions or
is swallowed
person
the
are
that there personally,*'not knowing giving personally, or receiving personally
you
15:17.
of Christ, in
of
us
Rom.
walk Light/' who do beg of and who
not
Word
hand
sometimes
Friends
of
Christ"!
the
live
save
any, Ghost.
Holy
to
of do
who
free
without
and
Jesus
who
ones
Those
man.
ones
children
only
the
healing
of
"glory through
us
men, are
laws
life of
the
faith. the of the eighteen hundred years, cry been churches has iquity in"judge not;" but cover up every with said to **charity"(?) my charity. But Christ hypocrites only, "Judge not, that ye [hypocrites] be not children of the Spirit) to His (those born judged ;" while Paul He And, said, "Judge righteous judgment." as and against covetous judged righteous judgment persons, For
nearly
"
other
offenders
lisher, of the
Church
things" (1 Cor. 2 sharply" all who cloak On
their
own
these
ity(?) and a
:
false
church,
15)
for
And
in
be
must
every
the
very
able
Holy Ghost, ''Charity" (?)
"
the
fallen
sinful
words
to
with
church
soul
that
Christ's
"judge
to
and
blocks"
great "stumbling
judging"
teacher, and
every
the
by
hypocrite according
7), for
so
of Christ,
cry sins.
two
to-day. not," is
the
in
"
estab-
"judge to
all
"rebuke
which
"false lies in
to
charness dark-
cries, "Judge
judging
not," there
thew (Matis
the
FOR
by every Evangelists, and
judging
instant, in
who
one
from
away
every
soul
Every
bring (from the
rebuke,
to
*'Be
Life:
of
exhort,
either
you among and worldly
covetous
Word
the
season:
and
Oh, remember,
them.
"
of
out
season,
of
221
BODY.
AND
speaks
Teachers
righteous judgment;" put
SOUL
SPIRIT,
"judge
repentance
Church
or
God)
of
minded
person. The judge.
does
must ''judge'' only question the we "judge according to our appearances" and do or judgment own *'judge righteous judgment" we wisdom of the the word, and according to God's Holy Ghost? To have must judge righteous judgment," man which the judgment of the Word of God, comes only that i. mind is through a sanctified intellect, e., through a
is, Do
*
from
prqudice
misled
brethren
free or
"
3
do
Ho
means
no
and
ignorance;
say that work''
more
point
them
to
8-10,
which
declares
:
should
neither
**the mind
Paul's
he
we
can
"
teacliing
as
faith"
knowledge
through given
in
Thess.
2
would
"if any man The sanctified
^alone
mistaken
life of
the
that
eat."
Christ"
of
live
**to
when
that
so
work
not
mind
which
"
is
judg"judge righteous ment," His for spirit, laws according to soul and "sit in darkness" rance) (ignobody, against those who oil in their lamps, without watching for the Lord known of healing" contrary to God's waiting for "miracles of healing, or starving (in trying to live)"the life of laws the sure faith" or by refusing to obey either God's Word want." of our laws to "work physical being or "
God's
can
Word
and
"
toil is not
Honest
provider, but the
from who
able
faith
for the for
the
life of faith
in God
as
commands
of
Word
without
work
"faith"
is idleness
labor and
people. 15
loves
to
household
all the
young
God's
which
entire
Loving the
But
work)
to
to
a
and
saints alone
old and And
work,
of
etc.
not
faith,
can
the
the
(in those
shame.
slothful
(Rom. 12 : 11-13), "Not says in spirit serving the Lord,"
fervent
Bible
according
beginning.
are
Paul
is
contrary to
in
Only
only for supply
business, this
true
but its own, ties the necessi-
of God. can
supply
"misfortunate" may
God's
the
physical and
Spiritshow
unwise the
needs
of
among
"foolish
222
god's
have
virgins"
who
without
works
is
there
no
case
be it may while And
that
possess,
say
to
of
lungs,"
lamps,"
that
"faith
that
healed
false
claimers
for
themselves
lost
restore
heal
of
prayer faith, which
to
power
faith.
they do they still
incurable,
God's
faith
whatever
or
tne
lost
and
eyes
a
joints
the
limit
not
must
by
have
if you
ear-drums,
heal
the
and
lost
etc.
overzealous
These doctrine
of
faith
to injure the are doing more persons it. God to sustain healing than never
againsty but
works
their
declare
be
not
can
never
to
in
disease, anchylosed
others, "You
maimed,
one
by
believers"
these
not
oil
"no
healing
of
is dead."
"faith
Other
laws
which
law
always
by
a
vrith
always pump," the
"suction
laws.
own
law.
stronger
"water
His
law
The
downhill,"
runs
He
of
is
powers over-
gravitation
by
overcome
the
ram,"
culation "capillary" cirof trees, the human in the **veins" body, etc. miracles limits His of healing God own by His own laws. And and those mental, spiritual only physical, laws those of these of who who complain ignorant are are them. of To the for ration restonot successfully ignorant pray lost portion of of any the human body would Jesus He only possessed require the creative faith, which had "unlimited faith" alone the Spirit without ure. measlack of faith is our Our law for own of limitation healing, casting out devils, etc. faith be it unto to your you." "According Christ did not do His that "But disciples should say and maimed of healing for the sick greater miracles the
"water
.
"
bodies No
of
than
men
done?"
"greater" physical healings
Jesus
performed;
God's
Word,
to
had
He
ever
and
other
"none
healed
one
case
The body. "greater works" fulfilled in the disciples were fell upon them and continue diseases to heal
possible
were
man," of
them, them
to
(the lesser
cowardly,
the
new
birth
"
lying, unconverted
the
birth
of
Peters,
not
than
man
record
the of
the
of
man hu-
Christ
which
"gave
into
to
maiming
Ghost
souls
in
did
He
No,
promised the when Holy power" not only to
lead
Spirit;so
that
works), but the became
brave
and
FOR
truthful
'*the
"
eternal
much
greater
mortal
body,
Holy
Ghost,
eternal that
the
the
did
Father
salvation,
healing
and
of
ciples, disthe
sent
sanctification
and
by
is
them."
know
THE
of
STANDARD
world
is
Man
made
has
one
standard
one
But
tried
God
law
Moses'
of
"an
proved
and
law
of
within
man"
"the but
Then
be
the
and
eye,
power law of
Rom.
7
another
:
of of
for the
for
for
obeying
justice "Yea
True, "
God's
weak;
man.
tooth
a
I had
under
tooth," the
even
Spirit
own
became
give
to not
have
^founded*'
measures
measure,
all
shalt
'*Thou
for for
love
one
his
own
of
have
to-day, giving weighing
of
man,
ye of
standard
(rod's
Moses, says, And
that
you
a
has "a
and
to
"fallen
known
7.
of His
wonderful
attributes
"
unto
the
crime.
justice
"
a
for
illegal
"
attributes
death."
and
law."
of life
incapable the
for
revealed
God
an
for
of
Son (i.e., coming Himself by sending His own commandment declaring that, "A flesh), and new
love the
the
for
another
another
His
of
to
of sin
law
by
eye
him;
of the
government
rich, another
powerful,
standard
without
justice,
dwell
the
one
man
God's
"
friendship the
for
the
for
one
by
man,
"the
standards
legal crime,
but
has
For
standard
only
God."
for
for
God
for its
MAN.
many standard
standard
one
poor;
with
CHRIST.
OF takes
for
LIFE
enmity
fellows:
his
CHURCH
of Christ
church
The
"
gift of
find possible. In 1 Cor. 8 : 2 we will of humility assumptions prevent Our faith is made possessed. manifest works. "By their fruits ye shall our
of grace which is not
lifeand
the
to
alone
and
was
the
our
sin
the
**greater works'*
returned
whom
by
life
"faith"
much
so
life is than
eternal
as
Christ
after
by
received
and
"
223
BODY.
life.
As
the
God"
of
sons
AND
SOUL
SPIRIT,
another." standards
Man on
claims the
laws
in I to
of
justice (Deut. 25 : 15), which perfect and just weight,*' etc. the and most perfect scales and perfect and just weight" measuring "everything under
224
god's
the
sun," whether
the
tons
laws
great
of minerals
of
healing
small, liquids
or
solids, from
or
and
grains of vegetables to the small the fine," of precious stones; from deadly drugs or "carats earth beneath bodies But above. with to the heavenly all of these 'inventions" of perfect weights and measures, and with laws the perfect (?) and of to enforce (?) just man, of men's perfect (?) and just(?) penalties for violations standards of justice, man continues his fellows to defraud and his **perfect"(?) inventions, and laws as more more, increase
lawmakers
and
number.
in
And
while
man
the perfect penalty to-day on an *'eye for an eye" o{ justice when his fellow deals unjustly by him, still he begs for mercy, prevaricates and seeks to **creep out'* from all penalties, when he himself is guilty. and But with God's of love justice, perfect standard his and himself." will **love '^Beneighbor as man can the sin of the world.*' hold the Lamb of God, which taketh away followeth shall world: he that Me the light of the "I am insists
"
"
in
walk
not
the
Yes,
this
darkness
the
medicine
secrets
of
for
of the
soul
fall
short
men
Christ
darkness
no
And
man.
doctrines
to
of "the
behold
"the
men)
fall
of
know
why
redeem
God from
man
God's
scales from
"came
the that
of
our
in curse
no
the
of
bodies
politics, which
standard
of
likeness
And "the
of
life
standards
standards we
in
calling
false human
sin.
men's
standards
the
high
see
"try
can
law,
all of
(of the false eyes,'*and the
can
man
of
perfect
all of these
cast
we
to
man
**light, in search-light of
that
mark
life."
of
this
this
"
light
no
standards
discover
Jesus,'* according
aside, and and
all"
we
"
light
with
But
at
Ghost
this
(divers)
the
of life.
Holy
Without
men's
have
standard
the
religion.
or
is
of
light
of
shall
God\s
"
of sin.
spirits"
there
of life
light
Without the
but
darkness,
see
and
and
sinful now
feel
flesh" we
of
see
are our Rudfeel temples Ghost." of the nhe temple Holy living God," and And proclaim why Jesus, can see praise God, we called "the Son of man" "the Son of Joseph," was in Daniel, John and and Mark.Luke, Revelation, Matthew, why Jesus "the So7i of man." Jesus the Immanuel Himself named
and
know
"
the
226
god's
when
consider
we
that
almost
spirit," was Stephen,
who
receive
our
earthly life;and "members
live
of
Him
Jesus
could had
be
Would
world
those
man's
it
his
in
sicknesses become
Satan"
of God,"
yet
Word
the
Jesus,
in
'*the
ease dis-
no
Jesus
heals''
be
also
in
shares
order
he
with
share
to
to
child
of carry
of God
men"
whUe
logical to ignorance The
God.
all *'the is in
they
things
sion" "posses-
teach
prejudice,
ignorance,
to
the
out
and in
the
order
iu
through Christ
bear
bearing
man
(ignorance)
error
first
must
devil
of the
with
a
devil
devil
disease
seek
through
man."
faith, except
sufferings
spirit of Ghost "Holy
"fallen
of
the
disease.
Think
who
mth
and
"false their
or
education.
the or
Holy Spirit
Ghost" Holy of kingdom to
that
co-worker be
may the
either
doctrines," false
a
hold
and
"
sicknesses, and
(?) that
benefactor,
those
as
all
of
For
with
and
of
Ghost
own
claim
body. griefs and
healer
conclusions
Holy
own
and
cross.
believe
who
and a
"exalt
the
on
of healing power devil heal the can
Before
disease
and
mis
the
in
and
Him
bones."
Saviour
only body
to-day, through
the willing to admit the atoning sacrifice Him
the
as
into
receive
bodies
own
can
in
His
of
will
we
our
spirit,soul,
borne
already
flesh, and
in
"
"Lord
**all one"
are
'^believe"
Jesus
healed
we
martyr, Jesus,
spirit),we is brought
Saviour
of His
we
as
bore
alone
and
body,
before the up Healer of the
only
human
the
ray
first
saying,
tliat, indeed,
His
the
of
God,
Lord
life of
the
over
cry,*'I commend
cry
upon
our
proportion
in
same
spirit" (meaning near
healing
SaviOur^s
our
called
hut
And
of
the
my feel Iww
"
laws
the
"
Ghost of
God.
received
God
"
teaches
never
Remember
by
every "the vmdom
is not
full-grown
that
in
man
babe
Christ
of
either
to
the
*'the
gift of
the
born
into
the
contrary
God"
Jesus.
which Think
longs beof
rvow intelligent Christians have all been of the know to taught by greatest *'theologof the past of the ical" teachers religious "reformations" other under heaven As *^there is none given among name that of Jesus be must saved," than whereby we men
the
false
doctrines
which
all
"OK
Christ, Church
praise the
or
The
Church
other
teacher
Holy
Ghost,
and God."
of Christ,
Cephas out by
the
Holy
saith. Jam
one
that
than
creed
and
the
of the
and
there
by
"
is
man-made
any
Body
or
selves
"the
of
the
Christian of
the
born
are
bodies
can
Mother
in
true
and
body
of
who
while
Apollos;
are
no
lay
man
let
soul,
can
who
truly
say,
They
may
and
soxds
has be
of
call
Christians
names men, usurp all self-organized "orthodox"
the
among name
Church
branches has
have the
but
"branches,"
them-
Church,
which
of
no
been
Vine:
Antichrist
Ye "
organized
as
them),
of Christ.
religious bodies,
the
are
Christ"
of
"
there
"We
different
"
"
called
are
Calvin,
of
Church
individual
"
Christ
of
Interdenominational
"the
the
truly Lord, belongs to
men,
Church
Gospel Mission," But
has
Church
godly
*'Church
in
that
of the
only
men,"
interpretations
authoritv
tlieir
Christ."
Church,
Church"
the
and cried
of
their
for
Christ
(though
the
"Therefore
"Jam (See Frontispiece branches"). Only the Church
the
"the
of
commandments
every
of Luther,
except
"into
of
Paul
"
Christ."
accepted
of
Holiness
"'branches'' **
for
been
Church
church."
Jam
foundation
men,
and
name^
Church,
etc.
^11, 21), 'Tor
another
while
Church
Wesley,
Church
i, e., **the
3:4,
"the
of
organized
no
Cor.
has
the
body'^
"one
established
and
Wesley,
is Jesus
man
And government.^* repented of sin, and the
no
the
and
J*
men
God,
of
has
of God
Woi-d
Christ,"
otlier
commentaries
Word
which
created
Calvin,
of Paul,
of
to
graven
worshipers, in and Apollos worsliip Paul
to
is laid, which
Every
add
idolatrous
the
began
;
another;
to
why praise to
church
the
Ghost of
**For
give
as
Lord
the
am
Then
offer
only
than
(1
glory in
man
no
I not
named
be
of men?
Ghost
carnal?"
not
ye
"I
says,
so
is the
Luther,
i, e.,
"
and
"idols"
when
And
Church
to
Church
"the
8
:
glory images." graven
authority the Holy
for
42
of **the
that
justly
will
of Christ or
named
Isa.
227
than
can
My
dead
BODY.
nwme
we
Christy another,
of
images
whereby and
name,
AND
other
none
Christ."
of
Body that is My neither My name
is
Christ"
of
"the
the
there
so
even
SOUL
SPIRIT,
believe
they Again and
^i^^
GOD*S
teach,
as
"Mother
Church"
Christ,
God
that
called
majority
of
He
was
above
God
and
God
and
His
teach
of
of God's to
all the
to
either
2
old
life for
knows
that
and
hell
his
the time
Magog,
cast
night forever lasts, but
finally
shall
and
shall
be
(?) and
eternally a higher myriads
sit in
not were
which
"laid
is
devil, and
the
hold
a
have
of e^erTioZ devil.
Book
is short; and the the
and
ever,"
devil,
Inke
after "time into
of
as
says after
that
fire and
shall
the
as
be
lake
wicked
that the
tim^ no
of
"
the
false
fire," with
God-
devil battle
prophet day and
day and
longer."
or
and
great
"tormented
of
out
nations."
the
beast, and
the
long
the
for
torture
The
loosed
the
originated, invented God-dishonoring,
glory), the
own
after
when
be
deceive
to
Satan,
.
.
"And
shall
Satan
out
go
.
the
on
and
years, little season"
could
into
cast
angel
an
expired,
himself
his
and be
triumph
time
believe
merh
he
that
and
after
Satan
but
"
that
loosed
doctrine
eternal
shall
that
God;"
8.
shall
(for
dethroning
Gog
shall
not
thousand
a
are
devil
the
:
serpent,
be
must
discovered
of
2
him
years prison, and
Only
of
God
declares
20
thousand his
creeds
so
than
Thess.
that
he
even
would
the ruling over lost children, he wills, and torture out as meting failed and Jesus sons daughters of earth, whom redeem to or "destroy by the brightness of His
bound
that
forever, hate
love;
exaltation
Revelation
and
devil's
God*s
coming." dragon,
Christ
and
children
confess
thwart
to
power
His
devil
to
great
eternity, in
is called
that
compelled
the
of
of
the
true,
all
orthodox
the
over
throne
Himself.
be
had
All
that
triumph
unto
few
the
Himself,
of
cycles
the
all
above
take
images
endless
himself above would
and
His
great warfare
"exalted
claim
were
and
(deathless)
his
forever
the
as
God
of
and
doctrines
men"
immortal
an
created the
of
our
close
will
redeemed
such
longer.
no
be
God
bpth
children
over
will
God's
of
hath
Surely, if only "exalt God*s
the
throughout
sight
whom
at
and
God,"
them
torture
man,
all
created
devil,
and
of
against
was
tliat the
against is
man
HEALING
"doctrines
same
teaches
e., that
i
soul, and
the
the
bodv,
a
OF
LAWS
night for
the
"
"death devil
1?0R
and
"all
but
that
resurrection"
"orthodox"
(Gen.
in
declare
creeds,
and
that
**God
can
not
soul
and
body
in
hell."
these
of
His
**His
that
.
saints]
ihat
"many the
into
fashion
and
few
that
of
out
but
free
body,
form
"impassible all organizations
an
and
declares
.
(Isa. 10: of
glory
the
consume
soul
and
.
the
of
of
trees
His
forest
the
and
shall of
one
may chosen."
darkness
be
of
the
this
Gospel
world,"
for
indeed,"
heart, and
them;"
And
world
present Church
and
"whom
of
custom, Son
the
all shall
and
be
to
creed, school,
every
free
wfite
child
a
few
light of be separated from of "the bondage
make
Not
be
marvelous is to
"one
rest
called
are
Christ, shall
"the
shall
God
of
that
forever,"
''destroy both
"both .
his
of
28.
shall
wicked],
live
not
plainly
One
and
life
all
shaU
Christ"
of
of
love
.
.
'His
called
Holy
[the
forest"
devils"
Word
God's
:
no
is
God's
tree
e., can
10
Church
"the
Tnen.
bod}'^;"
Matt
by
there
that
and
"man
taught
eternity.
or
antichrist
that
of
which
the
of
death''
m:mid as
22-24)
:
help it," i,
"doctrines
gulf" between
3
but
sin;
the
in time
partaking
from "
from
lifeeither
declares
prevented man living forever
death
eternal
more
no
Word
God's
17-19)
2^9
BODY,
is (his children), "which second torment life of eternal
antichrist,
And
AND
liars"
the
not
"
SOt/L
SPIRIT,
be
of
mind."
one
the true and body of Christ of Christ, who He is ^'walking in the light as only Church the is in to (man-controlled) light,^'can belong any of medicine, religious organization, politicalparty, school member
one
society
secret
or
of
the
"
of man,
association
of whatever
name
or
nature.
Isa. Son
9
:
is
and
mighty
*'For and
given;
shoulder; The
6 says,
us
the
His
God,
unto
The
be
is
unto
oorn,
shall
government shall
name
child
a
be
a
His
upon
Counsellor,
Wonderful,
everlasting Father,
us
Prince
The
of
Peace." Word
The
the
"put up -"to
thy
"come
also
says
members sword" out
from
that of
"
to
put
among
"the
**His away
Prince
body" the
them,"
"
of His
Peace" church
physicians and
to
of
declare
manded com"
to
Baal "our
230
GOD*S
LAWS
HEALING
OF
citizenship'^in heaven, by yielding onr spirit, soal, and be to body to the GFreat Physician /or all things; and no bnt by His longer governed by the creeds of men, ment governwho alone has to the right or the wisdom govern His
children.
own
*'Is Christ
divided?"
in any
tized Can
other
"unite''
we
name?
Can
with
bapbody? wholly to we
other
"join" any still belong
we
and
creed
a
Were
1:12-15.
Cor.
1
Christ? We
"unite*'
not
"join"
are
bom
and
or
flesh, and
are
no
do
Register' to
of
and
be
put
Can
a
the
they will the
on
they have no dogmas religions (?),medical
names
kingdom
God
longer
no
religious or
in
written
are
of
lAgM^
of the
and
darkness;
its traditions,
politics.Their
or
Liw;
with
of
We
Spirit," body, of
His
of
children
"The
world
of the
"members
can
we
Christ"
of
Christ," ""bom
of
bones."
this
but
men;
Church
"the
Christ,"
in
of His of
more
"
Church
"babes
His
to
with
"unite"
of
creeds
"join" the
into "the
become
more
and
Lamb's
^"the
"
their
suflTer
"the
Great
Book
of
names"
"*new
of
registers"
political"great
men.
a
Christian
and
and
crime
not
be
criminal? The
Church
of
infamous
"Chinese
souls
bodies
and
England
And
traffic." the
government
responsible
crimes
which
lust and
result
all
from
over
waves
the
"
U.
the
the
a
crimes
of liauid
stamp for
the
more
nation
of
S.
"
of
insanity making
famous in-
use
of
this
liquor
''the is
fessed "pro-
stamped whole
the
and
murders,
robberies,
excitant
awful
crime.
The thy sword." But to-day says, "Put up thy sword." "orthodox" creeds (man-made) cry, whenever brother and sword," slay thy Jesus
United
the
for
of
America.
barrel
every
nation
responsible
are
protect
to
millions
And
destroyed.
been
creeds
Christians,"
is,responsible for the
and
Trafl5c," by which
"liquor traffic" in Flag of the Union"
"The
with
was,
Opium have
Protestant
States
to
vice
for
(?)vote
said, 'Tut
up
Church all of "Draw
of this
Jesus
world's
forth
brethren
(?)
the can
FOR
not
will
or
creeds
all "orthodox" "old
creeds law"
tooth,"
''Christ's
"Resist
not
of
own
that
Church"
of
'^bdieve"
eye,
authority tooth
a
Christ's evil
overcome
(?) that
themselves.
for
good."
right their Christ
of
knows earth.
on
peace
"resist
a
doctrine,
with
can
bring
only, can body
Chrisfs
of
men
Church
The
of Peace'*
members
and
all while
.
.
men
an
For
the
on
proclaims
"but
for wrongs, the "Prince
Hence
eye still
war
that
from
deeper.
justify
men
evil"
creeds
and
for
"an
.
The
of
Christ"
of
still broader
made
is
herein
"And
Church
*'the
2S1
BODY.
AND
together."
separates
of men,
of the
'*walk
not
which
gulf
SOUL
SPIRIT,
evil"
not
but
"second and work for His unto patiently wait coming" sin and death. and "Patriotism," judgment victory over have The devil politics,and war no place in Christianity. led the first "rebellion" principle of against the divine peace 12:7-9.
in
"
Church
The
Word
heaven.
of
of God
for
"
For
there
Christ
takes
was
in
war
God's
heaven.
standard
Rev.
only
"
the
sanctification.
SAXCTIFICATION.
"Before
planned
foundation
the all
things Man
law. creatures
under
things
and
and
"
all
put and
in fixed
his
heaven
fixed as Pole (Ps. 139 : 16). Magnetic for body, soul, and spirit,is law
the
of
as
And
world"
(Eph.
things
under
creation,
earth,
and the
like
North
every
law
1
4) God fixed unchangeable
all
and
of man's and
other
placed
was
Star
:
the
being
fixed unchangeable as which in their the laws the heavenly bodies are govern the Mariner's needle in of the its orbits, or Compass laws for the body are pointing to the north always. The fixed the laws for the soul and as spirit. as drinks dresses If a man works eats sleeps, or or or or laws God's ing, for fixed eating, drinking, workcontrary to how dressing or sleeping, he will suffer (no matter religious (?)he is)the penalties of violating the unchangeable his laws of his physical being; and come body can not bedisobedience in the to sanctified body while a as
232
god's
laws
Creator's
its
for
sanctified
laws
of
healikg
No
government
is, or
man
be,
can
his
while
body by against sinning of gluttony, sensuality (legal or illegal),or by the use alcohol, other tobacco, drug poisons, yclept opium, or 'medicines" defile the (?) for (1 Cor. 3 : 17), "If any man shall God temple of God, him destroy; for the temple of is holy, which God Do be deceived, not temple ye are." for however no ous gluttongreat the claims for sanctification sanctified body, ever or drug-defiled body is ever a **the temple of Ood" in his ignorance of the laws of his own Man body may a
man
*
think and
(?) (see 1 Cor.
8
:
sin-possessed body be taught cleanliness
to
soul
nor
be
can
God's
And
his
2) that
it
he
as
revealed
has
until
'*the truth,"
sanctified, claim Word
but ;
is sanctified and
drug-poisoned,
diseased,
he
willing body
is
neither
his
may.
the
only
one
law
same
tification. sancbody, soul, and spirit,for healing, salvation, and of obedience the truth and and love Humility the form bring into the can only spiritual trinitywhich whole ^the sanctifi/^alife of man body spirit,soul, and
for
"
"
tion
of
All
Ood.
stubble"
TCiRn^s vanity of revealed that
his
with
salvation
own
to
no
magnetic needle north pole," or the
being drawn Q.freewill and all
to
more
of
except And
Jesus the our
free won%
a
said
Father ''Elder
do
with
has
to
which
had
and
6
:
hath
Brother's"
its
of
words
draw
''drawn its has
man
withstand thine
Me
to Me
come
can
are
own
with
that
give
man
Me
do
wills
so
"Son,
44), "No sent
he
his
being
to
except
if
can
do
to
more
sanctification
needle
magnet,
shows
with
own
with
do
plainly
and
no
do
to
his
common
invitations
(John
has
and
is
of God,
Word
he
common
loving
God's
heart."
the
to
inventions"
sanctification
man
and
"hay, wood,
"man's
the
than
the
the
in
the
of
and
sinful
self-conceited,
creation; and than
Himself,
Jesus
by
poor,
for salvation
law
fixed
is
and
thoughts humility (?).
man's
of
God's
(?)
sanctification
other
him."
both
spiritually,
a soul literallyand scientificallytrue ; for whenever itself to spiritual laws. "magnetic" obey" God's
"yields
J
of
love,
234
qod's
laws
Oh, the wickedness
of teach
that
sinner
world's
"this
to
with
the
world,
declared
Christ
shall
Pharisees,
it, while
all
the
that
20)
:
continuing
in
and
no
and
in
business
formity con-
tions transac-
devil!
eousness rightyour of the scribes and
"except into
enter
case
(''fallen-
sanctification
righteousness
the
in
can
flesh 5
demagnetized
a
daimi
wisdom,"
(Matt
shall
ye
for
the
exceed
iug
he
from-grace") "hold God responsible"
hbaling
of
the
kingdom
of
heaven." is
Sanctification of the wUl
and
is
There
salvation
no
indwelling
consdoua
of tlie lifeof Christ
and
it
which
that
the
nor
in
from
spirit
man.
sanctification
appropriates
the
of
in
God
soul
any
yond be-
livesin
and
its
for spirit,soul, and daily life. Sanctification body is in spiritual ignorance. Hence tlie necessity of impossible false teachings of ignorance, man's free from being made of putting in their and ings teachand place the knowledge revealed of God's and Word, as interpreted by the Holy Ghost only. of the But, alas! since "the falling away church," and the candlestick" "removal of the the (which was Holy been teacher has of authority for the no Ghost), there and divided church-creeds opposing dogmatic teachings and all the doctrines of men. Of opinions(?) (?) and to (which have notice), come our teachings(?) of men own
Healing/'
**Divine
concerning
"Sanctification,"
"Second
has given a sensible consistent, or Blessing," etc., not one and much of the less scriptural revelation spirit or soul which and they attempt to heal, save, body of man, or of others or by formulas sanctify through the traditions of their One the
"invention."
own
"the soul is the blood," because says Another life thereof," the etc. says
declares
spirit(?). Another One we
fall" claims poor
in
are
says
to
know
fallen
the
spiritis
to
the
"anything body of man.
as
he
One,
soul
God's
Another grace. the spirit"only.
of
out
or
"death
was
that
that
"the
soul(?)
is the
ought indeed,
us
not to
one
the
is
devil's that
as
"the
of them
know" says
is
self. him-
man
the
or
assures
But
blood
of the that
"the
FOH
body
did
become
a
subject
fall
not
from
of
how
"orthodox"
claim
of
"new
birth"
sinless do
of
men,
into
creeds
(?) also
of
or
sanctification, while
is
complete
6
:
led
truth
the
so-called
'*who
Christ, 16.
of
of
false
This of
the
the
to
all
on
religious doctrines,
dogmas
lo! there.
false doctrines (?) in these been gifts of the Spirit" have
they can do
they
sanctification
healing either
realize
lives.
own
sanctification"
and
both
from
away
claim
only fed or
healing
after
"seekers
not
their
in
themselves
shut
Word
soul," independent
that
them
from
withdrawn
have
is
declaration
the Jesus
1 Tim.
the
"the
that
misled
salvation
believers
so
or
arable insep-
as
the
of
deny
commentaries
that
wonder
as
denying
Lord
Christ, has
and
is
daim
or
followers
which
of lol here, and
days
healing Many
all
as
"immortality
of all the
believe
expect life,while
man
concerning our immortality." See
hath
God),
became
".,
truth; Thy
Thy
Ghost
only
in these
of
have
(God's love).
can a
creeds
Holy
No
and
i
Sanctification
through
Word,
God's
the
love
it would
case
partially,
(the wisdom
them
sanctification
fell
235
BODY.
that
in
death."
and
from
And
truth/'
it
But
wisdom
inseparable "Sanctify
AND
totally,for
corpse. disease
to
SOUL
SPIRIT,
healing
and
them before received by claiming to have in either whatever, change experienced any they had health heart, either in fad or feeling. or
sanctification
If
soul
any
is
full
"be
does
unto
LIFE," but
that
we
wrote
a
sanctified
or
darkness
passed 1
but
3
John
Ghost, in
us,
:
14.
"
one can
Ghost
ye
received
the
ye
claimed
sandijicaiionf
man,
and
life.
interpret that
Book.
since
ye
know
love
we
never
will.
never
of
standard
death
Ghost
Holy
The
believed,"
is
he
"We
life,because
unto
through
alone
Holy
this hour.
unto
death
from
Book
one
know that feel nor has xxoVpassedfrom
nor
see
"commentary"
wrote
Holy
not
is in
brethren."
the
He
have
all.
at
converted
or
whole
of
darkness
no
Whosoever
healed
sanctified, "the
and
converted
that sovl will "see the light," and that body will feelthe light,that lightin which
body" mil light" and there
is
And
the
"Have or
since
236
god's
makes
Man
he
thought of
man
of the
temple
has
Man
set forth
made
(not
And
found
be
to
altar
own
it;and claim
Spirit
of
obedience
32
:
27, which
destruction
of
that
it is then
if *^
man
God's
our
to
that
dearest
work
fellows
mi
idols. that
he
(as it
the
or
he
second build
to
is
taught
to the
But
God's
Word and
power
if
even
to
sanctification
it
and sity neces-
part of
the
refer
we
firstbe put
must
upon
But
not.
own
wisely (?)
how
to
has
his
(?) himself
obedience
show
obedience,
claims
his
names
own
God, on sanctification,
receive
of
world")
obtain
to
very of "the
sanctification,the
only by
shows
consecration
o{
faithfulness
can
written
lie receives
Again, and
he
the
(?) and
describe
to
sanctification
comes
his
"consecrate"
to
his
God.
before
man,
teach
claim
truth, which
of
the
taught
how
God)
and
this
of
healing) whether gives but one kind
of the
Ex.
talked
has
and
to
become
which
by
invented of
Word
his
Word
the
how
"
it has
sanctifications
rules
has
has
He
of
foolish
wisdom
eta blessing,'*
his
the
He
"the
(through
"theology" (?) or the body
of God"
body," ap^
man
in
sanctification.
"temple
kinds
many false and
sanctification.
in
Ghost.
Holy
many
when
the
carnal
call it "a
hbalinq
mistake
down"
"drags
to
"
fatal
a
of
laws
^'consecrated
by
away
the
causes
doctrines
to
of
men
himself"
sanctify him/^ and "all that man has sanctification" to do is to claim (whether he feels the and sanctifying power purification of God's Spirit or not). "blind "Don't wait leaders of the these for/e^Kn^," cry blind." And false result the of these teachings (of the of souls of sanctification) is that and only a ver^'^ enemy of sanctification" few of the ^'professors have possessed what they hsiwe professed. Tlie most pitiful sight to those who and lives of their laying down own by faithful obedience have ness sanctification received ^'through the truth,' is to witthe physical sufferings, mental misery, and spiritual who darkness of the nmajority of all of those are great name" than that gathered together to-day, in any "other of Jesus Christ, the Sanctifier, or Healer. only Saviour, will All sanctificntion by the Spirit of God bring forth of the ^*the fruits humility, generosity, Spirit,"obedience, to
FOR
charity,joy,
and
does
which
SPIRIT,
SOUL
lovableness teach
not
A^'D
237
BODY.
of character.
only way of teaching
the
teaching
Any
sanctification
to
aUme that which through obedience, will fail the life into the threefold nature bring the spirit and can of man tlie body, soul, and the necessity spirit Hence for knowing the lawa of the Spirit for the body, soul, and For if we spirit of man. attempt to live a sanctified life for the soul only, we will sadly fail Do be deceived not longer. No liar, deceiver, covetous in trade, "grinder of the trickster poor," usurer, person, ist, sensualreceive sanctification. And or hypocrite, can no slanderer, backbiter, gossip, wrangler, disputer, "false "
accuser,"
or
careless
healing by God
or
man,
for, his And,
oi
conceit, and and
blindness
in
or
save
All
work
soul
one
/ait
can
it
confesses
claims
for
healing
false admits
its
ignorance
following after the
offered
of, and
ance repent-
and
men,
turns
its
and
to
receive
sins, and
tification sanc-
self-
sanctification,
helplessness and false teachings and mandments comGod and to cries, "Lord, and
perish."
claims
self; that
not
spirit, when
of I
God,
to
humbly
any
the confession
manent per-
means
sins.
own
gloiy
body, by
through
save
perfect and
receive
can
person for soul and
that
it is
to sanctifv
ive
place
our
us,
are
to
are
to
"empty
consecrate
of "the
wisdom
ourselves"
of sin
ourselves, and of this world,"
or
OocCa
and
unscriptural as they are powerless to either heal, save, or soul clouds Word body. or (In God's sanctify a human Eccl. 11:3.) in God's But ing, healonly empty themselvea the Holy Ghost does saving, and sanctifying of man, is all all man only coTisents (from the heart) to consent do. that man thine heart." **Son, give Me **Behold, can I stand at the door and of knock" healing or Every case sanctification after that ever claiming it before occurs in a month, a a day, or receivingit (whether it occurs year is the false daim for received, not from afterclaiming it) it beforereceiving it, but from to a better after obedience God's laws and and from increased Word, an expectation (which is faith) for the healing or sanctification of soul or as
"
"
16
god's
238
do
while
But
body.
of
in
only one healing or
either
receive
laws
healing
these
of
ten
false
claimers
sanctification
after their false who God's will learn laws of healing for claims, every one both receive body, may spirit,soul, and as ual spiritas soon wisdom the has taken the place of God knowledge of intellectual **the wisdom of this world." ignorance His first appeal Jesus made to fallen man through the all that body; for the body was healing of man's man could know until ''born of the Spirit." And it was, or see be made and is, only through the body that man scious concan soul of either Jesus His in Himself, or spirit whole personal ministry of preaching, teaching, and ing healing, only proved by the healing of disease and castof devils that there out Spirit, which was a a power, could out cast devils, heal diseases, and forgive sins, but the sanctification left the**greater works," of spirit,soul, and the Spirit of body, to the Holy Ghost, the Comforter, the Father will send in My to reprename," truth, "whom sent and '*both Me all '*teach Father," to My things," you all truth." into and "guide you "
"
"
did
Jesus
do
unbeVef souls
came,
and
God
not
say, the
14:12),
shall
he
he
do,
because
do
that
declares
the
must
that in For
cries
body
your
you, ye
But
Jesus
said,
believeth
works
greater
Spirit,"
gifts of
the is
an
Spirit interpreted.
who
received
have Ghost
Holy
of
can
says works these
God's
in
their
hearts and
I
shall who or
any
Word,
truth, by
understand
ceased
that
whom
in
saving days of to-day
man Any healing"
unbeliever
little of the be
and
than
Father."
My
"the
Me, the
on
of
of
alone
(body
teacbthe
God.
of
Paul
of
creeds
bodies
healing the healing^ and
gifts
withdrew
his
works"
"greater
of
unto
go
"God
Only those and spirit)the Word
the
also; and
but
Word
the
works
that
I
"gift of knows
and
lesser
"He
the
when
past."
were
do
other
that
all of
and
antichrist
as
withdrew
miracles
(John
sav,
which are
out
(1 Cor.
is the ye
bought
6:19,
temple
have with
of
God, a
of
20), ''What! the Holy
and
price;
ye are therefore
know Ghost not
ye
ttot
which your
is
own?
glorify G^d
in
FOR
your we
and
body, glorify
SOUL
SPIRIT,
God
iu
your
in
body
defiled, alcohol-filled,
239
BODY.
AND
spirit,which and spirit
Can
God's."
are
with
sick, doctor-
a
and
opium-poisoned
Holy
Ohost
brain
and
body? Many
talk
persons
sanctification," either
none
are
1 Thess.
may deceive
not
can
wisdom
the
Paul
Even
deceive
and
of
the
did
not
to
the
in high calling of God Any other position than
for
to have
God
and
dangerous is
child
of
words of
the
continual
but
destructive of
born
who
God,
"spirit and of life" to "that Spirit" within,
of
the
condemnation to
claim
to
that
them
which
One,
save
any,
mark
those
the
there
light,"
God's
Lord of
"
teaches
Word
in
witness
therefore
now
no
Jesus," etc.;but
been
^^whoUy is to
ecmcti-
the
deny
ourselves
for
a
fall.
future
by the Holy
every these
knows
has"the
Christ
ever
ever "Whoso-
sin;" and
is
in
only
not
is
while fied,** "walking in the dress of flesh," and to exalt plain teachings of God's Word certain
the
life.
true, and
has
things things prize of
dependence on
Christian
in
are
"whoUv
those
for
commit
be
tified sanc-
Jesus."
to the
is "walking
our
perfect," but
pressimg forward, not
ot
coming be "wholly
become
of humble
that
doth
God
the
Christ
soul
tliey who those taught are body. spirit,soul, and
or
toward
before, I press
are
sanctify
peace
sanctified," "utterly sanctified," or "already declared (PhiL 8:12-14) that, "forgetting which behind, and reaching forth unto are which
men
terms.
others, but
and
claim
of
spirit and
the
claim
Ghost
himself
of
unto
Ghost
human
sayings
whole
themselves
Holy Holy
the
God
your
preserved blameless Christ." Mcmy may
Jesus "
God
what
man-made
but
very
know the
than these
for
be
body
Lord
the
says: I pray and
whoUv;
you and
further
scriptural, "And
5:23
believed!'^
ye
possibly
can
meaning,
them
of
soul
no mean
their
reveals
judgment
But
terms
since
'^complete sanctification," "utter
of
etc.
these
of
the
received
**ffa/ve ye
Ghost
the
sanctification
"
Father is
"sanctification in "
Christ
Jesus
^in God,
given
to
man
through "
in
etc., but for
the
the
truth" of
name
never
following
a
"
the
promise man's
or
240
god's
Satan's
of "consecration"
stubble," which hay, and Tnan's work day when every
that
man-made
on
shall
be
shall
sumed con-
be
tried
fire.
by
Church
The be
to
lead
and
"consecration,"
All
We
God
used
by modern
destructive
commands
(see
Ex.
3:6;
7
Lev.
13; 1 Sam.
while
35:6), twice,
but
where
he
once
brother
and
43
:
his
and
only
not
are
to
that times
ten
Joshua
11:18;
Ex.
in
29
82
slay every and companion
:
25-29, his
"
to
6;
:
himself"
''consecrate
once
who
references,
:12; 2 Chron.
15
26, and
them
man
every
Bible
Num.
20:7;
man
Ezek.
commanded
God
teachers,
following
commands in
ical phys-
*sanctification"
5; 1 Chron.
:
and
hopes of those very of men. the darkness
11:44;
16
and
men,
"Sanctify yoursdves^*
to
them
the
to
the
of
are
delusion,
names
from
men
19:10; :
mental
which
upon
"Sanctify
altars
The
light of God find, by reading
Truth
other
the
altar
one
of
death. as
but
misleading for
but
spiritualdarkness,
disease
seek
has
altar
the
"
truth."
the
into
Christ
of
sanctified
through
man
man
every
neighbor." Do
"professional"
the
realize
cations(?) of either To
and
grace"
"brother, sin
of
either
to
"
our
own,
of
and
''cost
the
what
other
thing
medicine
which
from
"
its
(?) its business
is contrary
Therefore
"
"come
to out
God's from
sin
every
also no
of
of
from
can
the
mean
remaining
creeds,
its
in
politics,
deceptions standard
our
every be
man
which
among
law
"the
under
Spirit"
Lord's
the
**on
out
sin^while
thing, i. e., separated from wisdom" to "this world's bondage of
step
(both
same
its schools
sanctifiman-taught spiritual meaning
neighbor," and For it rfiayV
sanctified
or
and
ourselves
separate
consecrated
is to
sword
companion
of
sanctification?
or
ourselves "the
use
teachers
scriptural
the
consecration
consecraie
side" of
healing
"wood,
of in
his
of
devices"
"cunning
altars
laws
or
of them"
any
eousness. rightand
"sanctify yourselves'^ ^**through the truth;" for **God hath salvation chosen the beginning to from through sanctification you beliefof the truth." of the Spirit and book will close this We by defining plainly the origin, "
242
god's
laws
of
iikalixg
the
tlie great bulwarks attacks of subtlety of Satan, who the spiritual meaning of words Christianity, by changing in God's down Book, and dragging them through vanity of learning (?) until robbed of all power of all they are Antichrist has For done what ''spiritand life." against the he has done words, Ghost, life-giving precious Holy also against that of the Holy Ghost's most important word teaching "charity." that Paul, by the inspiration of the Holy Ghost, defined wonderful and all-inclusive word of the most Spirit, charity, with such minute, cations positive and negative qualifithat it is impoaaible for any soul inspired by that it was stand defined, to misundersame Holy Ghost, by which it Paul 13) that charity is not says(l Corinthians faith, nor eloquence, nor giving the pity for the poor, nor but it is kindness, that body to be burned; humility, endurance, "And hope, etc. patience, truthfulness, now abideth faith, hope, charitj',these three; but the greatest of these is charity." And notwithstanding Paul gives as complete and scriptural definition of this Holy Ghost ity, inspired word, chara has dictionary gives of its words, still "ttsagre'* as any word the charity to mean brought now "giving to the another's sins. poor," and covering up one "
"
word
The
In
Hy.
Matt.
:
his
Lord
Himself
declares
that
Master
The
them.
definition of
the
change
not
the
43-46
love, and
love
which
those
5
followers
char-
word
tion gives the definithe publicans love
and
the
their
love
to
for the
substituted
be
not
can
word
of the
did
love
perfectTeacher love; but
word
enemies
well
as
manded com-
their
as
friends. One Son the Only possessed ''divine hve.^*
of
"
the
of
fruits
charity,"
and
"divine
love;
"gifts" of "
But
charity
"
are
but
''divine
the the
and is
Charity
divine
of
Man
love.
all of
them
neither
one
only
"These the
one,
three,
fruits
God
of
Son
or
the
ever
"
greatest
faith, hope, attributes
of
love^*
only
charity,^* And charity includes
why
is ''divine
"
the
love.''
greatest
greatest?
of
these
Because
is
both
is
faith
FOR
SOL'L
ttPIHlT,
AND
24^
BODY,
Cf
lesser
the love; for without gifts of divine lesser gifts of faith, hope, etc., it is impossible to comprehend less to live the life of charity. much and the most to man perfect love known Charity includes the love of our enemies but stands much higher than as and
hope
as
"
"
love
jnan's
(as
stands
Creator
Paul
says,
higher **Though
charity I am and sanctify. And hope added not
of
attribute
an
the
than
thing
and
can
not
save
have
.
.
alone
Faith
the
as
created. .
faith
Love)
all faith
I have
nothing." to
Divine*
the
can
without
not
save
charity;
all of the "quench fiery darts of the anchor and of the wicked," "as soul," hope may.be an all knowledge without charity (spiritual wisdom) yet with ''I am The nothing" gifts of prophecy, knowledge, faith, without but all spiritual powers, hope, healing, etc., are the spiritual wisdom of charity, which faileth we never delusions O beloved, beware of intellectual nothing, are and *'the commandments ofmen'^I with all of its learning "The wisdom this of world," either and the not comprehend languages, can origin or of charity; for the Holy Ghost of the nature Holy Ghost or created the word both the word Holy Ghost. charity and Christ there Until Jesus to earth came Stop and think. love neither for to teach Holy Spirit nor Holy Ghost was And until the enemiea (not the Holy Holy Ghost our in the name and of Christ, to earth sent Spirit) was power instance of this love for enemies. known there was never an defined And named until and the charity, Holy Ghost and it with wonderful its known unglorious attributes, was for
while
faith
may
"
to
either
Hebrew,
Greek
or
any
other
language
of
earth .
Greek
scholar
is held
"autliority** **holiness, sanctification," boldly that "the on etc, asserts and precisely synonymous;'^ Holy Spirit are Holy Ghost same." find and that the But '^charity and love are we scholar Greek this same declaring that **your spirit,i. e., when heart, i. e., soul, is yourself. Hence, spirit is your One
saved,
learned
you
are
saved.
who
Therefore,
as
sanctification
is
full
^44
GOD^S
salvation,
i. 6., it
And
when
scholars'"
know
we
the
soul, and
in
all
charity
say
soul
that
whether
"
of
spirit
your
Christ
And
for
of man; "life
Christ, and
resurrection
Holy
Ghost,
does
Holy
which
Jesus'
name,
the
Father
"in
the tlie
manifested
Christ
Spirit of
"in
sin
in
of sinful
likeness
overcame
His
of
Comforter," even
the
the
all that
Son
And
(the Comforter flesh," He
is
Ghost,
the
this
can
or
the
Comforter.
For
Spirit of
"
sin
overcome
of His
as
fought the Holy
"God
Is the Master
Holy
of His
most
Ohoat"
of "the
travail
blessed Neither
let
of His
soul"
us
attempt
to
God
as
let to
us
rob
which
of "Comforter,
name
in
was
And Himself." unto reconciling the world glorified the Father, glorified the Son, and the Son glory is due, and not attempt glory to whom give
Saviour
in
Christ
before "He
body,
God
of
Christ
our
Man
of
proved tried Spirit before)
"
Saviour
love,
and
flesh
"
death
of the
the
tried
make "members us to-day, and of His flesh,and of His bones." in the Word The Holy Spirit is mentioned only two places (Ps. 51 : 11; Isa. 63 : 10, 11), where and crucified glorified; once was ^but never the house of Israel against them" in the
His
Son
unknown
alone
Jesus
known
the
as
the
"
includes
was
and
flesh."
life
Spirit. The sent by the
was
charity
as
life
the
into
after
personal life of Plainly the Holy Ghost
thereto.
added
until
man
include
Holy Ghost the Spirit, with
can
lectual intel-
Saviour
and
outpouring
the
we
these
reaiirrection
Lord
our
and,
of
Ghost
Holy
is the
is "the
body,
of
IMMORTALITY.
to
and
relation
of Christ."
"out
or
"Greek
origin in the false the immortality of
teaches
the
of
the
to
their
HATH
unknown
was
in
which
"
the
to
faithfulness
only brought the Holy Ghost
and
Father
and
ONLY
abundant"
more
soul
of the
these
prove
pertains
Christ"
"in
CHRIST
can
they have
"theology,"
of
premises
"
salvation
and
of all that
ignorance
mistakes,
so
the
completes
spiritto
only
the
HEALING
sin."
from
the
Oh'
LAWS
rob
by substituting
our
love for
charity world
is
these
that
Remember any existenca
the
And
until
named,
quality, Ghost
Hoiy
the
BLoly
.
with
(the Holy
was
then
Jesus;
and
on
manifested of
promise
them
Jesus,
Ghost
Holy the
in
not
of
nam^e
And
all
the
until an
having or
to
is
the
"But
ye in
be
hence.**
days
Ghost,
is
attributes
of
Holy
Him,
for He
you."
And
Christ
of
our
in
them,
Pentecost
He
what
quality
of
true
charity were inspired
the
and
Lord
the of
n^Trve
manifested Paul
give
to
the
world.
change
either
to
never
the
His
attributes
ever
first
named
an
having
seen
intellectual
conceived to
be
apple,
ax,
it; neither
conception in his
an
mind
a
square,
or
has
pass com-
man any spiritualattribute
or or
heart
the
ever
fore be-
substance
named.
work the heathen missionary we among in conveying the meaning of the succeed na/me Ghost received until it has the to a single soul the same And Ghost. unchangeable spiritual law true
was
is true
In
as
the
according to baptized with
spiritual power
n^me
of
know
And
can
not
disciples, s[)eakand Holy Ghost"
also
Gliost
an
have
"Emmanuel"
with
power, shall be
"ye
has
Love.
man
named
His
to
"begotten
was
the
as
dwelling the day of
and
or
sent
said
interpretations
modern
of Divine No
for
name
origin, nature,
the
(Jesus)
great
that
Holy
the
wonderful
in
many
Charity, for until it was impossible its
uot,a,ndcould
?i;a"
Ghost
shall
and
you,
it
before
thing
or
.
Ghost)
of
person
.
inconceivable
and
impossible
Jesus (God with us). Hence which Comforter, ing of "the "the Spirit of truth," dwelleth
it is both
faileth,'as
never
(the Father), and
Ghost"
Holy
the
it is
substance,
name
been
greatest of
**the
love.
and
wisdom
that
the
in
thing
greatest
declares
"charity
for
24S
BODY.
"the
Paul
while
love;"
charity,"
is
that
claiming
and y
AND
SOUL
SPIRIT,
FOR
of all men, civilized heard felt, we or can
or
savage; know not
for
until
we
never
Holy Holy is just have
anything. All savages is a menu and manito (good Spirit), say there mujjie manito (bad spirit), but it is as impossible to a of the Holy Ghost make them or apprehend the meaning seen
or
246
god's
until
charity, hearts, the
name
is
the
"good
Holy
know
the
Spirit, heart
and
mind
each
stand under-
to
but
not
soul
one
glorified
and
reveals
of
the
clavm
resurrected
"branch
has
He
understand
can
may
personally
apprehend
before
"charity;"
Christ's
until
of
and
and
Ohoat,
Holy
All
their
to to
Ghost
Holy
spirit,"
Spirit*'
either,
learned
and
hearts.
"bad
and
"the
their
Himself
reveals
the
of in
Spirit"
Ghost
civilized
nature
Himself
healing.
of
Holy
for
or
revealed
can
the
it
as
laws
Himself
the
the
to
Vine."
True
See
Frontispiece. And
whatever
Hebrew,
etc., all
have
namfies
for
been
substance,
they
only
represent
"the
wisdom
of
the
Rob
definition love,
as
find the
Jesus, "LIGHT
a
OF
the THE
the
and
those
charity, Holy
names
Himself
Ghost
attributes
of
and
them, of
conceptions
God
of
the
and
men;
was
and
man
rob
"
only WORLD."
Holy power
the and
never
Ohost
is of
the
Word
of
of
God the
without
"the
of
the
name
and
resurrection Church
word
the
"Comforter,"
the
and
name
substitute
church
a
Ghost's substitute
and
called
"church" the
Holy
charity,
(Comforter),
which
for
since
intellectual
word
Ghost
Spirit;"
or
Greek,
in
to-day
world,''
by
powerless
and
this of
defined
Spirit,
Holy
the
the
Holjr
name
there
quality,
Word of
Ghost
Holy
placed
the
gave
the
found
be
may
w^e
gifts life
Christ
of of
the "
CHRIST The
Book
BY
This be
of
of
Book
the
the
Age
style and
same
ANTORfSr
vs\
of
AARON
will size
THE
contain as
about
God*s
"
AARON
AGED.
hundred
two
Laws
of
THE
Age.
the
and
fifty pages,
Healing,
will
ai
AGED,
594.
Box
and
"
Cal.
Oakland,
God's Laws of Healing FOR
Soul and Body. Spirit, This
**
Wonderful
Book
spiritual, intellectual to
and
"
enters
physical
into
being
and
explains of
man,
the as
no
laws other
do.
Address.
"FAITH
HEALING.
99
which book
govern
has
ever
the tempted at-